Selected quad for the lemma: spirit_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
spirit_n call_v cruel_a good_a 54 3 2.1572 3 false
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A27337 The world bewitch'd, or, An examination of the common opinions concerning spirits their nature, power, administration and operations, as also the effects men are able to produce by their communication : divided into IV parts / by Balthazar Bekker ... ; vol. I translated from a French copy, approved of and subscribed by the author's own hand.; Betoverde weereld. English Bekker, Balthasar, 1634-1698. 1695 (1695) Wing B1781; ESTC R4286 207,500 352

There are 35 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

french_a tongue_n it_o have_v lose_v its_o ancient_a name_n in_o remembrance_n of_o the_o resurrection_n of_o our_o lord_n and_o be_v call_v dimanche_n from_o die_n dominica_n sect._n 9_o let_v we_o proceed_v from_o the_o god_n to_o the_o demon_n or_o spirit_n of_o a_o mean_a order_n thales_n of_o milet_n teach_v if_o we_o believe_v plutarch_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o the_o world_n be_v full_a of_o spirit_n namely_o the_o air_n which_o they_o inhabit_v and_o the_o earth_n in_o which_o they_o converse_v among_o man_n the_o greek_a word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d come_v from_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d i_o know_v as_o signify_v one_o that_o be_v very_o learned_a because_o they_o believe_v that_o those_o demon_n know_v whatever_o be_v important_a to_o man_n either_o for_o their_o happiness_n or_o misery_n and_o that_o they_o be_v as_o the_o mediator_n of_o man_n towards_o the_o go_n and_o it_o be_v observable_a that_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d likewise_o signify_v to_o mediate_v so_o that_o the_o demon_n import_v so_o much_o as_o mediator_n and_o therefore_o they_o have_v also_o be_v call_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o mediator_n and_o director_n of_o man_n and_o have_v be_v place_v according_a to_o the_o opinion_n of_o the_o heathen_n betwixt_o the_o heaven_n and_o the_o earth_n viz._n in_o the_o air_n and_o consequent_o betwixt_o the_o god_n and_o men._n sect._n 10._o though_o the_o opinion_n be_v divide_v as_o to_o their_o nature_n yet_o they_o agree_v in_o these_o principal_a point_n that_o they_o be_v spirit_n that_o they_o be_v mortal_a and_o however_o that_o they_o be_v no_o god_n as_o plato_n write_v in_o his_o timoeus_n which_o explain_v more_o at_o large_a in_o his_o convivium_fw-la he_o say_v that_o the_o demon_n have_v a_o nature_n which_o be_v the_o mene_n betwixt_o god_n and_o man_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d but_o what_o virtue_n have_v they_o that_o of_o explain_v and_o declare_v to_o man_n what_o thing_n belong_v to_o the_o god_n which_o be_v their_o command_n and_o how_o sacrifice_n must_v be_v perform_v as_o also_o that_o of_o offer_v to_o the_o god_n what_o come_v from_o man_n viz._n their_o prayer_n and_o sacrifice_n so_o that_o they_o be_v in_o the_o middle_n comprehend_v the_o nature_n of_o both_o as_o bind_v and_o unite_n the_o whole_a together_o sect._n 12._o as_o to_o their_o administration_n plato_n explain_v it_o thus_o from_o they_o come_v to_o we_o prediction_n augury_n the_o worship_n of_o sacrifice_n conjuration_n oration_n and_o the_o whole_a art_n of_o magic_n the_o deity_n meddle_v not_o with_o man_n but_o those_o spirit_n be_v the_o director_n of_o all_o the_o communication_n and_o converse_n of_o the_o god_n with_o we_o either_o wake_n or_o sleep_v the_o demon_n therefore_o be_v by_o their_o nature_n mediator_n betwixt_o the_o god_n and_o man_n and_o be_v beside_o spirit_n and_o almost_o god_n can_v not_o be_v better_o call_v than_o spirit_n of_o a_o middle_a order_n in_o relation_n to_o their_o nature_n or_o mediate_a god_n in_o reference_n to_o their_o function_n in_o how_o great_a consideration_n those_o spirit_n be_v and_o what_o be_v the_o sentiment_n of_o the_o ancient_n concern_v they_o may_v be_v learn_v from_o st._n chrysostome_n tom._n 6._o lesle_n 66._o entitle_v against_o those_o that_o say_v that_o the_o demon_n direct_v the_o affair_n of_o men._n sect._n 12._o but_o what_o will_v be_v most_o useful_a to_o observe_v be_v that_o there_o be_v demon_n of_o a_o superior_a and_o other_o of_o a_o inferior_a order_n and_o that_o some_o be_v esteem_v good_a and_o other_o wicked_a 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d good_a and_o favourable_a whereas_o the_o other_o be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d evil_a spirit_n or_o by_o a_o more_o particular_a explication_n of_o their_o quality_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d wicked_a dangerous_a enemy_n cruel_a however_o these_o demon_n either_o good_a or_o bad_a be_v not_o believe_v of_o all_o nation_n to_o be_v of_o the_o same_o dignity_n there_o be_v some_o among_o who_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d import_v as_o much_o as_o deity_n and_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d divine_a even_o in_o plato_n the_o sovereign_a god_n be_v call_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o great_a demon._n however_o the_o general_a use_n be_v to_o distinguish_v the_o god_n from_o the_o demon_n as_o have_v be_v already_o observe_v and_o as_o aeschines_n express_v it_o in_o his_o clesias_n o_o earth_n god_n demon_n and_o man_n whoever_o you_o be_v that_o desire_v to_o know_v the_o truth_n and_o therefore_o plato_n in_o the_o place_n already_o quote_v may_v right_o say_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o those_o learned_a and_o middle_a spirit_n be_v in_o great_a number_n and_o several_a kind_n but_o it_o be_v not_o necessary_a to_o speak_v more_o of_o it_o for_o perhaps_o it_o will_v only_o induce_v we_o into_o several_a error_n there_o be_v so_o much_o uncertainty_n in_o plato_n and_o other_o that_o have_v write_v upon_o it_o they_o be_v so_o much_o oppose_v against_o one_o another_o and_o even_o to_o themselves_o sect._n 13._o as_o to_o the_o hero_n they_o be_v extraordinary_a man_n and_o so_o far_o above_o the_o vulgar_a that_o every_o where_o especial_o among_o the_o roman_n they_o use_v to_o consecrate_v and_o deify_v they_o after_o their_o death_n which_o be_v call_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d a_o canonization_n herodian_a in_o his_o four_o book_n chap_n 2._o make_v a_o particular_a description_n of_o that_o ceremony_n with_o all_o the_o circumstance_n of_o it_o on_o occasion_n of_o the_o death_n of_o the_o emperor_n severus_n beside_o we_o general_o find_v in_o the_o write_n of_o the_o ancient_n that_o they_o parael_v they_o with_o the_o demon_n plutarch_n relate_v in_o his_o opinion_n of_o the_o philosopher_n chap._n 8._o book_n first_o that_o thales_n plato_n and_o the_o stoic_n believe_v that_o the_o demon_n be_v spiritual_a substance_n and_o that_o the_o hero_n be_v soul_n separate_v from_o the_o body_n which_o be_v good_a or_o bad_a as_o man_n have_v be_v virtuous_a or_o vicious_a this_o be_v especial_o the_o doctrine_n of_o pythagoras_n who_o in_o all_o thing_n that_o relate_v to_o religion_n have_v have_v more_o disciple_n than_o any_o of_o the_o ancient_a heathen_n and_o be_v yet_o the_o most_o follow_v by_o those_o that_o be_v not_o christian_n he_o teach_v that_o those_o demon_n and_o hero_n bring_v in_o dream_n disease_n and_o cure_n to_o man_n and_o even_o to_o cattle_n and_o labour_a beast_n according_a to_o the_o testimony_n of_o diogenes_n laertius_n confirm_v by_o plato_n and_o not_o contradict_v by_o aristotle_n sect_n 14._o apuleius_n in_o the_o book_n former_o quote_v more_o particular_o demonstrate_v that_o the_o power_n which_o put_v the_o natural_a passion_n of_o man_n into_o motion_n which_o govern_v they_o and_o lord_n it_o over_o they_o as_o also_o the_o soul_n separate_v from_o the_o body_n be_v call_v god_n and_o demon_n or_o spirit_n that_o the_o soul_n bear_v with_o the_o body_n die_v not_o however_o with_o it_o and_o that_o she_o bear_v the_o name_n of_o genius_n when_o they_o be_v separate_v from_o each_o other_o this_o meaning_n can_v methinks_v be_v better_o express_v than_o by_o name_v those_o soul_n associated_n spirit_n or_o spirit_n peculiar_a to_o one_o subject_n since_o every_o man_n have_v one_o within_o himself_o the_o other_o that_o be_v those_o that_o be_v separate_v from_o the_o body_n or_o the_o soul_n of_o the_o decease_a be_v common_o call_v manes_n as_o though_o remain_v because_o they_o remain_v of_o ●●●●●st_n after_o the_o body_n for_o which_o reason_n i_o shall_v name_v they_o survive_v spirit_n however_o as_o to_o the_o latin_a word_n it_o seem_v rather_o to_o be_v derive_v from_o manis_n a_o ancient_a obsolete_a term_n which_o signify_v fine_a and_o good_a as_o immanis_fw-la import_v as_o much_o as_o ugly_a and_o cruel_a because_o the_o mane_n be_v ordinary_o take_v for_o benevolent_a spirit_n sect._n 15._o some_o of_o this_o last_o sort_n remain_v in_o the_o house_n of_o the_o decease_a to_o watch_v over_o his_o successor_n and_o be_v call_v lar_n or_o domestic_a god_n but_o the_o other_o err_v at_o random_n and_o as_o exile_n according_a as_o they_o have_v deserve_v by_o their_o wicked_a life_n they_o can_v cause_v but_o vain_a fear_n to_o virtuous_a person_n but_o to_o the_o vicious_a a_o just_a terror_n and_o all_o sort_n of_o pain_n they_o be_v call_v lar_n night_n phantasm_n and_o spectra_fw-la diogenes_n write_v that_o most_o of_o those_o thing_n be_v teach_v in_o the_o school_n of_o plato_n as_o it_o still_o appear_v by_o his_o book_n entitle_v phoedo_n they_o have_v also_o the_o name_n of_o lemures_n which_o be_v suppose_v to_o come_v from_o remures_n and_o this_o from_o remus_n brother_n to_o
the_o present_a laplander_n do_v not_o frequent_o nor_o public_o exercise_v magic_a their_o ancestor_n have_v be_v more_o addict_v to_o those_o superstition_n of_o which_o most_o of_o the_o modern_a laplander_n be_v free_a and_o tho'_o the_o country_n be_v purify_v of_o that_o sort_n of_o witchcraft_n ever_o since_o the_o king_n of_o sweden_n have_v forbid_v under_o grievous_a pain_n to_o use_v enchantment_n yet_o there_o be_v still_o a_o great_a number_n among_o they_o who_o make_v it_o their_o whole_a study_n and_o employment_n the_o cause_n of_o it_o be_v that_o every_o one_o of_o the_o laplander_n be_v persuade_v that_o magic_n be_v indispensable_o necessary_a to_o he_o that_o he_o may_v avoid_v the_o snare_n and_o insult_v of_o his_o enemy_n to_o this_o he_o add_v that_o they_o keep_v school_n in_o which_o child_n be_v teach_v that_o art_n and_o that_o parent_n be_v often_o their_o tutor_n in_o it_o that_o they_o exercise_v they_o in_o it_o require_v their_o assistance_n and_o be_v present_a at_o the_o performance_n of_o those_o detestable_a practice_n but_o what_o be_v yet_o more_o strange_a be_v what_o this_o author_n far_o relate_v that_o the_o father_n bequeath_v as_o a_o inheritance_n to_o their_o child_n the_o wicked_a spirit_n that_o be_v in_o their_o service_n that_o by_o their_o help_n they_o may_v overcome_v the_o demon_n of_o other_o family_n their_o enemy_n sect._n 5._o what_o they_o pretend_v to_o effect_v by_o mean_n of_o their_o god_n and_o spirit_n be_v to_o discover_v some_o thing_n by_o divination_n and_o to_o operate_v some_o other_o by_o witchcraft_n for_o divination_n they_o make_v use_v of_o a_o kannus_n which_o be_v like_o a_o drum_n and_o must_v be_v make_v of_o a_o particular_a wood_n and_o rather_o of_o birch-tree_n than_o any_o other_o there_o be_v a_o skin_n or_o membrane_n extend_v upon_o the_o body_n of_o that_o drum_n wherein_o the_o laplander_n draw_v several_a figure_n with_o a_o red_a colour_n make_v of_o the_o bark_n of_o alder-tree_n bruise_v and_o boil_v they_o beat_v it_o with_o a_o instrument_n like_o a_o hammer_n 6_o inch_n long_o but_o not_o big_a than_o the_o little_a finger_n not_o so_o much_o to_o make_v a_o noise_n as_o to_o cause_v a_o bundle_n of_o brass_n ring_n that_o lie_v upon_o it_o to_o move_v when_o that_o bundle_n begin_v to_o leap_v up_o they_o observe_v the_o part_n and_o figure_n towards_o which_o it_o move_v and_o divine_a by_o the_o situation_n motion_n and_o rest_n of_o the_o bundle_n on_o the_o place_n which_o signify_v the_o design_n they_o have_v form_v the_o manner_n of_o this_o enquiry_n be_v not_o always_o the_o same_o for_o they_o make_v use_v of_o several_a different_a from_o one_o another_o by_o those_o mean_v they_o discover_v what_o pass_v in_o foreign_a country_n how_o distant_a soever_o they_o may_v be_v they_o know_v the_o good_a or_o bad_a success_n of_o the_o affair_n they_o have_v undertake_v they_o cure_v disease_n they_o find_v out_o what_o sacrifice_n and_o victim_n be_v most_o pleasant_a to_o the_o god_n of_o the_o land_n these_o that_o desire_v to_o know_v the_o state_n of_o their_o friend_n or_o enemy_n live_v a_o thousand_o mile_n from_o that_o place_n have_v but_o to_o go_v to_o a_o laplander_n who_o discover_v it_o this_o way_n he_o cast_v himself_o upon_o the_o ground_n and_o become_v tike_n a_o dead_a man_n and_o his_o face_n altogether_o livid_v he_o remain_v in_o that_o state_n a_o hour_n or_o two_o according_a as_o the_o country_n whence_o he_o will_v get_v news_n be_v more_o or_o less_o distant_a and_o when_o he_o awake_v he_o tell_v whatever_o pass_v in_o that_o country_n especial_o as_o to_o what_o be_v inquire_v after_o there_o be_v yet_o some_o other_o particular_n as_o to_o that_o way_n of_o divine_a gather_v from_o several_a author_n but_o it_o will_v be_v too_o long_o and_o even_o unserviceable_a to_o relate_v they_o sect._n 6._o they_o have_v yet_o other_o sort_n of_o witchcraft_n the_o first_o be_v a_o twist_v cord_n with_o several_a knot_n which_o they_o use_v to_o raise_v wind_n on_o the_o sea_n so_o they_o do_v as_o it_o be_v sell_v the_o wind_n and_o proffer_n they_o to_o merchant_n that_o be_v detain_v on_o their_o coast_n by_o tempest_n and_o contrary_a wind_n have_v agree_v upon_o the_o price_n and_o receive_v it_o they_o give_v he_o a_o string_n with_o three_o magical_a knot_n on_o which_o lie_v this_o condition_n that_o as_o soon_o as_o they_o have_v untie_v the_o first_o there_o rise_v a_o fresh_a and_o pleasant_a gale_n when_o they_o have_v loose_v the_o second_o the_o wind_n grow_v strong_a but_o when_o they_o have_v untie_v the_o three_o there_o arise_v such_o a_o tempestuous_a storm_n that_o they_o be_v no_o long_o able_a to_o govern_v their_o ship_n this_o sort_n of_o trade_n be_v use_v especial_o in_o finmarke_n among_o the_o danish_a laplander_n because_o the_o neighbourhood_n of_o the_o sea_n afford_v they_o more_o occasion_n of_o it_o than_o any_o where_o else_o but_o the_o account_n that_o scheffer_n give_v of_o their_o other_o sort_n of_o witchcraft_n show_v that_o he_o himself_o give_v little_a credit_n to_o it_o they_o have_v little_a magical_a dart_n make_v of_o lead_n very_o short_a be_v no_o long_o than_o one_o finger_n they_o dart_v they_o to_o the_o remote_a place_n against_o their_o enemy_n of_o who_o they_o desire_v to_o avenge_v themselves_o and_o by_o that_o witchcraft_n they_o send_v upon_o they_o such_o dangerous_a disease_n with_o such_o sharp_a pain_n that_o for_o the_o violence_n of_o they_o they_o often_o die_v within_o three_o day_n thy_o have_v also_o a_o kind_n of_o fly_n call_v gans_n which_o they_o let_v out_o of_o their_o ganeske_n that_o be_v a_o leaden_a purse_n and_o daily_o send_v some_o of_o they_o to_o annoy_v and_o vex_v their_o enemy_n but_o we_o have_v not_o a_o perfect_a knowledge_n of_o whatever_o they_o practise_v on_o these_o occasion_n there_o be_v also_o some_o laplander_n who_o for_o this_o purpose_n make_v use_n of_o a_o tire_n which_o be_v a_o round_a ball_n as_o big_a as_o a_o walnut_n it_o have_v a_o particular_a shape_n as_o be_v describe_v in_o scheffer_n relation_n and_o it_o have_v also_o some_o motion_n they_o sell_v this_o tire_n and_o the_o buyer_n may_v send_v it_o upon_o whosoever_o he_o please_v he_o shall_v be_v most_o cruel_o torment_v with_o it_o sect_n 7_o but_o enough_o of_o the_o laplander_n let_v we_o now_o speak_v of_o other_o nation_n litgau_n say_v that_o the_o wild-irish_a adore_v the_o moon_n as_o well_o for_o their_o own_o preservation_n as_o for_o that_o of_o their_o flock_n and_o that_o they_o direct_v to_o her_o this_o prayer_n among_o other_o leave_v we_o as_o healthful_a as_o thou_o find_v we_o whence_o i_o infer_v that_o they_o hold_v something_o of_o the_o ancient_a paganism_n that_o ascribe_v a_o divine_a virtue_n to_o the_o influence_n of_o the_o star_n tho'_o it_o seem_v by_o this_o form_n of_o prayer_n that_o they_o attribute_v not_o to_o they_o a_o full_a and_o sovereign_a power_n in_o the_o administration_n of_o the_o world_n sect._n 8._o as_o for_o the_o remain_v of_o paganism_n among_o the_o samagite_n a_o people_n situate_v betwixt_o lithuania_n and_o livonia_n we_o be_v teach_v that_o they_o much_o worship_v the_o sun_n and_o moon_n the_o fire_n the_o thunder_n the_o grove_n and_o tree_n exceed_o high_a which_o show_v that_o they_o go_v far_o than_o the_o wild_a irish_a and_o believe_v that_o there_o be_v demon_n in_o the_o air_n and_o upon_o earth_n that_o reside_v in_o all_o those_o object_n but_o it_o may_v be_v see_v in_o olaus_n magnus_n what_o account_n they_o themselves_o make_v of_o the_o god_n of_o thunder_n and_o of_o the_o spirit_n in_o the_o air._n for_o say_v he_o they_o not_o only_o pretend_v to_o give_v succour_n to_o their_o god_n in_o their_o quarrel_n they_o have_v with_o their_o enemy_n endeavour_v to_o imitate_v the_o thunder_n with_o the_o beat_n of_o hammer_n but_o be_v not_o afraid_a even_o of_o fight_v against_o they_o with_o arrow_n and_o other_o arm_n they_o shoot_v in_o the_o air._n there_o be_v also_o place_n in_o lithuania_n where_o the_o inhabitant_n adore_v a_o domestic_a god_n call_v dinstipan_n that_o be_v the_o director_n of_o the_o smoke_n or_o chimney_n sect._n 2._o the_o tartar_n keremiss_n a_o people_n of_o eastern_a moscovy_n believe_v according_a to_o olearius_n that_o there_o be_v malicious_a spirit_n who_o may_v at_o pleasure_n cause_n several_a disturbance_n and_o vexation_n to_o man_n in_o this_o life_n for_o as_o to_o the_o future_a they_o have_v no_o notion_n of_o it_o to_o prevent_v those_o pain_n or_o turn_v off_o those_o spirit_n they_o offer_v sacrifice_n to_o they_o near_z rivers_z they_o likewise_o adore_v the_o sun_n and_o moon_n because_o they_o perceive_v much_o good_a be_v do_v to_o the_o earth_n
who_o have_v a_o share_n in_o the_o government_n of_o the_o world_n they_o say_v that_o brama_n have_v power_n over_o all_o the_o soul_n and_o distribute_v they_o to_o man_n and_o beast_n as_o he_o please_v that_o baffiuna_n teach_v man_n the_o commandment_n of_o permiseer_n and_o provide_v with_o all_o thing_n in_o this_o life_n those_o that_o be_v obedient_a to_o he_o and_o that_o mais_n call_v to_o judgement_n before_o permiseer_n the_o soul_n separate_v from_o the_o body_n who_o send_v they_o according_a to_o their_o desert_n into_o the_o body_n of_o man_n or_o beast_n to_o be_v afterward_o with_o they_o purify_v of_o their_o fit_n in_o a_o certain_a purge_a fire_n the_o gentives_n in_o the_o kingdom_n of_o goleonda_n believe_v also_o one_o only_a god_n who_o have_v be_v from_o all_o eternity_n but_o in_o process_n of_o time_n have_v associate_v himself_o to_o some_o inferior_a god_n choose_v from_o among_o man_n which_o notion_n be_v agreeable_a with_o the_o semidii_fw-la indigetes_n or_o heros_n of_o the_o ancient_a roman_n sect._n 7._o those_o ancient_a persian_n who_o have_v remain_v in_o their_o religion_n since_o mahometism_n have_v settle_v in_o their_o country_n deserve_v to_o be_v take_v notice_n of_o some_o remain_v in_o persia_n and_o live_v for_o the_o most_o part_n at_o ispuhum_n the_o capital_a of_o that_o empire_n other_o have_v retire_v into_o the_o indies_n especial_o into_o the_o kingdom_n of_o gusuratte_n where_o they_o be_v in_o great_a number_n here_o you_o have_v the_o belief_n of_o the_o people_n in_o the_o very_a word_n of_o carolinus_n extract_v from_o de_fw-fr laat_fw-mi varenius_n and_o tuist_n they_o believe_v that_o there_o be_v one_o god_n present_v every_o where_o who_o govern_v all_o thing_n a●_n pleasure_n without_o need_v the_o assistance_n of_o any_o one_o though_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n he_o have_v seven_o minister_n by_o he_o almost_o of_o the_o same_o dignity_n with_o himself_o who_o have_v each_o their_o particular_a office_n of_o which_o they_o be_v accountable_a to_o he_o the_o one_a be_v hamalda_n the_o governor_n of_o men._n the_o second_o be_v baman_n who_o have_v inspection_n over_o the_o beast_n and_o the_o creature_n of_o the_o sea_n the_o 3d._n be_v ardi_n best_o who_o preserve_v fire_n and_o hinder_v it_o from_o go_v out_o the_o four_o be_v sarivard_n on_o who_o metal_n and_o mineral_n depend_v the_o 5_o be_v espendaar_n who_o take_v care_n lest_o the_o earth_n shall_v be_v fill_v with_o filthiness_n and_o grow_v wild_a the_o 6_o be_v arendaar_n who_o have_v the_o direction_n of_o the_o water_n and_o who_o take_v care_n that_o they_o be_v not_o soil_v with_o nastiness_n the_o last_o be_v amadaat_fw-mi who_o have_v the_o inspection_n of_o the_o tree_n and_o fruit_n of_o the_o earth_n and_o of_o herb_n all_o these_o god_n be_v only_a inspector_n and_o director_n it_o be_v not_o in_o their_o power_n to_o inflict_v death_n upon_o any_o thing_n or_o to_o give_v it_o a_o new_a life_n for_o they_o be_v sole_o establish_v to_o give_v a_o account_n to_o the_o sovereign_a god_n and_o to_o inform_v against_o those_o that_o have_v ill_o use_v corrupt_a or_o violate_v the_o thing_n that_o be_v under_o their_o keep_n sect._n 8._o beside_o those_o 7_o minister_n there_o be_v yet_o 26_o of_o a_o inferior_a order_n each_o of_o which_o have_v his_o particular_a district_n sorach_n be_v the_o first_o who_o office_n it_o quick_o to_o bring_v the_o soul_n separate_v from_o the_o body_n before_o their_o judge_n viz._n i_n resna_n and_o saros_n the_o four_o be_v beram_n carrasedaats_n who_o direct_v war_n at_o his_o pleasure_n the_o 5_o be_v the_o sun_n the_o 6_o be_v anoa_n who_o have_v dominion_n over_o the_o water_n the_o seven_o be_v ader_n who_o be_v establish_v over_o fire_n the_o 8_o be_v maho_n who_o govern_v the_o moon_n the_o 9th_o be_v tiera_n that_o be_v the_o rain_n 10_o god_n govern_v and_o preserve_v cattle_n 11._o tavardi_fw-it take_v care_n of_o the_o s●uls_n who_o be_v in_o heaven_n 12_o aram_n bring_v joy_n to_o t●e_v world_n and_o banish_v pain_n and_o sorrow_n from_o thence_o 13_o goada_n rule_v the_o wind_n though_o he_o be_v not_o the_o wind_n himself_o 14_o dieu_fw-fr give_n to_o nation_n information_n and_o understanding_n of_o the_o law_n and_o inclination_n to_o keep_v they_o 15._o appersone_n afford_v riches_n 16_o astaat_n give_v understanding_n and_o memory_n 17_o the_o assamaan_n have_v the_o inspection_n of_o ware_n 10._o gimninaat_n have_v the_o conduct_n of_o the_o earth_n 19_o marisipant_n be_v the_o god_n of_o goodness_n which_o he_o communicate_v to_o those_o that_o have_v recourse_n to_o he_o 20._o armira_n be_v the_o director_n of_o money_n 21._o hoem_n be_v the_o author_n of_o the_o conception_n of_o woman_n and_o give_v life_n to_o their_o fruit._n 22_o 23._o dimnia_n and_o base_n be_v establish_v to_o succour_v those_o that_o stand_v in_o need_n of_o they_o the_o three_o last_o befadeer_n defemeer_n and_o defyn_n stand_v by_o god_n to_o serve_v he_o and_o be_v always_o ready_a to_o perform_v his_o order_n these_o be_v the_o name_n of_o those_o 26_o minister_n who_o the_o country_n man_n of_o persia_n honour_n with_o the_o title_n of_o gestio_fw-la or_o saint_n and_o who_o they_o believe_v to_o have_v authority_n and_o power_n all_o the_o thing_n that_o be_v under_o their_o direction_n for_o which_o reason_n they_o also_o adore_v they_o trust_v that_o they_o will_v be_v their_o intercessor_n to_o god_n and_o obtain_v from_o he_o whatever_o shall_v be_v necessary_a for_o their_o good_a sect._n 9_o have_v thus_o sufficient_o speak_v as_o to_o the_o god_n we_o will_v now_o treat_v of_o the_o spirit_n though_o we_o find_v but_o little_a information_n upon_o this_o point_n in_o author_n save_v in_o what_o concern_v china_n and_o the_o east-indies_n on_o this_o side_n the_o river_n ganges_n i_o only_o find_v mention_v make_v that_o the_o japanders_n in_o a_o place_n not_o far_o from_o osacca_n venerate_v a_o god_n or_o spirit_n name_v tiedebaie_o lest_o he_o shall_v hurt_v they_o and_o that_o another_o god_n call_v goquis_n frequent_o appear_v to_o they_o in_o a_o humane_a shape_n in_o the_o town_n of_o micao_n they_o worship_v in_o a_o statue_n of_o a_o frightful_a figure_n another_o spirit_n to_o who_o the_o christian_n give_v the_o name_n of_o king_n of_o the_o devil_n there_o be_v no_o pagod_n in_o all_o japan_n say_v carolinus_n which_o be_v so_o frequent_v nor_o enrich_v with_o so_o great_a presence_n because_o thereby_o they_o think_v to_o redeem_v their_o sin_n sect._n 10._o martinius_n kircher_n and_o trigaltius_fw-la three_o jesuit_n have_v write_v large_a history_n of_o china_n but_o very_o little_o insist_v upon_o this_o matter_n however_o consider_v what_o they_o observe_v of_o the_o worship_n of_o that_o people_n it_o may_v be_v conclude_v that_o they_o believe_v the_o existence_n of_o spirit_n as_o we_o shall_v show_v hereafter_o the_o siamese_n likewise_o venerate_a some_o wicked_a god_n though_o against_o the_o sentiment_n of_o many_o of_o their_o doctor_n under_o pretence_n of_o charge_v those_o bad_a spirit_n of_o such_o evil_n of_o which_o they_o will_v not_o make_v god_n the_o author_n it_o be_v say_v of_o the_o same_o nation_n that_o they_o give_v two_o spirit_n to_o every_o man_n one_o of_o which_o make_v they_o to_o be_v good_a and_o the_o other_o evil_n sect._n 11._o but_o the_o great_a knowledge_n we_o have_v of_o the_o opinion_n of_o those_o country_n come_v from_o the_o coast_n of_o choromandel_n carolinus_n who_o have_v gather_v what_o rogerius_n say_v of_o it_o in_o many_o place_n say_v that_o they_o believe_v good_a and_o bad_a spirit_n that_o be_v angel_n and_o devils_n they_o name_v the_o angel_n devetas_n and_o the_o devil_n ratsiasias_n they_o hold_v that_o both_o be_v beget_v by_o man_n and_o that_o their_o common_a father_n be_v cassiopa_n the_o first_o bramaine_v or_o priest_n and_o legislator_n the_o mother_n of_o the_o devetas_n be_v diti_fw-la and_o that_o of_o the_o ratsiasias_n be_v aditi_n both_o wife_n of_o cassiopa_n sect._n 12._o there_o be_v two_o sort_n of_o devetas_n for_o such_o man_n as_o go_v after_o their_o decease_n into_o the_o happiness_n of_o the_o world_n under_o the_o sun_n and_o above_o the_o earth_n be_v also_o call_v devetas_n but_o those_o place_n be_v not_o for_o they_o a_o eternal_a abode_n since_o after_o the_o succession_n of_o some_o age_n they_o must_v come_v back_o into_o the_o world_n and_o be_v bear_v again_o as_o to_o the_o other_o devetas_n who_o be_v in_o great_a number_n they_o never_o depart_v from_o their_o abide_v the_o sun_n moon_n and_o star_n be_v in_o that_o number_n they_o ascribe_v unto_o they_o both_o soul_n and_o life_n sect._n 13._o the_o ratsiasias_n be_v also_o of_o two_o sort_n some_o of_o they_o be_v wicked_a man_n who_o be_v condemn_v
of_o the_o first_o operate_n by_o the_o last_o and_o that_o they_o hold_v the_o celestial_a body_n for_o god_n because_o they_o act_n upon_o the_o sublunary_a which_o be_v of_o a_o particular_a and_o necessary_a use_n to_o mankind_n thus_o the_o heathen_n endeavour_v each_o according_a to_o his_o fancy_n to_o acknowledge_v a_o deity_n in_o heaven_n and_o to_o adore_v it_o upon_o earth_n sect._n 8._o the_o immortality_n of_o the_o soul_n the_o punishment_n of_o the_o wick●d_n and_o the_o reward_n of_o pious_a man_n after_o this_o life_n be_v general_o believe_v in_o peru_n but_o not_o the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o dead_a say_v montanus_n pag._n 307._o however_o it_o be_v strange_a that_o a_o people_n who_o have_v such_o a_o gross_a religion_n and_o such_o material_a god_n shall_v nevertheless_o believe_v that_o the_o soul_n subsist_v though_o they_o hear_v nothing_o of_o it_o after_o the_o death_n of_o the_o body_n and_o that_o they_o can_v not_o imagine_v that_o the_o body_n which_o subsist_v still_o for_o some_o time_n before_o their_o eye_n though_o without_o life_n can_v return_v to_o its_o first_o state_n as_o tree_n herb_n and_o plant_n which_o die_v and_o revive_v sect._n 9_o the_o statue_n of_o their_o god_n that_o be_v of_o many_o strange_a figure_n and_o some_o very_a frightful_a be_v use_v to_o utter_v oracle_n in_o their_o pagode_n some_o say_v montanus_n give_v their_o answer_n as_o former_o do_v the_o diabolical_a oracle_n of_o delphos_n and_o dodona_n he_o call_v they_o diabolical_a follow_v the_o common_a opinion_n that_o the_o oracle_n of_o the_o heathen_n be_v not_o pronounce_v by_o god_n but_o by_o the_o devil_n but_o it_o may_v be_v see_v in_o the_o book_n of_o anthony_n vandale_n of_o oracle_n how_o little_a ground_n that_o opinion_n have_v and_o we_o shall_v also_o treat_v of_o it_o in_o its_o proper_a place_n sect._n 10._o as_o to_o their_o practice_n no_o people_n be_v so_o much_o esteem_v in_o peru_n as_o those_o we_o call_v exorcist_n magician_n and_o diviner_n because_o they_o discover_v private_a robbery_n even_o such_o as_o be_v commit_v in_o very_o remote_a country_n and_o foretell_v good_a or_o bad_a fortune_n which_o happ●●s_v say_v montanus_n by_o their_o converse_n with_o wicked_a spirit_n in_o dark_a place_n they_o declare_v to_o the_o spaniard_n the_o victory_n their_o countryman_n obtain_v or_o the_o battle_n they_o lose_v in_o the_o low_a country_n the_o very_a same_o day_n that_o they_o be_v fight_v there_o be_v also_o in_o peru_n many_o she_o diviner_n who_o shut_v themselves_o in_o their_o house_n where_o they_o make_v themselves_o drink_v with_o chica_n mix_v with_o the_o herb_n vilca_n till_o they_o fall_v down_o on_o the_o place_n and_o when_o they_o awake_v and_o come_v to_o themselves_o again_o they_o answer_v all_o the_o question_n that_o be_v propose_v to_o they_o sect._n 11._o the_o cannibal_n who_o take_v the_o name_n of_o caraibe_n and_o dwell_v to_o the_o north_n of_o southern_n america_n acknowledge_v the_o sun_n for_o their_o sovereign_a god_n but_o in_o the_o mean_a while_o each_o b●ie_n or_o priest_n have_v his_o own_o which_o he_o call_v out_o to_o himself_o in_o the_o most_o frightful_a night_n by_o song_n or_o enchant_a verse_n in_o the_o midst_n of_o the_o smoke_n of_o tobacco_n the_o devil_n say_v montanus_n but_o i_o will_v rather_o say_v the_o spirit_n utter_v his_o oracle_n by_o the_o mean_n of_o dead_a bone_n wrap_v up_o in_o cotton_n those_o heathen_n have_v at_o all_o time_n but_o especial_o in_o case_n of_o death_n much_o to_o endure_v from_o the_o piais_n or_o magician_n but_o methinks_v montanus_n have_v express_v himself_o better_a have_v he_o say_v priest_n rather_o than_o magician_n one_o of_o the_o great_a disturbance_n they_o cause_v be_v that_o when_o they_o be_v consult_v they_o persuade_v people_n that_o such_o or_o such_o have_v cause_v they_o to_o interrogate_v such_o a_o decease_a which_o incite_v the_o near_a relation_n of_o the_o decease_a to_o avenge_v themselves_o of_o those_o that_o have_v disturb_v his_o rest_n by_o that_o action_n sect._n 12._o montanus_n add_v to_o this_o also_o the_o caraibe_n follow_v a_o most_o strange_a opinion_n concern_v the_o soul_n every_o one_o believe_v to_o have_v as_o many_o soul_n as_o beat_n of_o the_o heart_n the_o chief_a of_o which_o be_v still_o the_o heart_n itself_o which_o after_o the_o death_n go_v to_o icheiri_n or_o the_o god_n that_o be_v particular_a to_o he_o where_o he_o live_v in_o the_o same_o condition_n that_o he_o have_v do_v upon_o earth_n for_o which_o reason_n they_o kill_v the_o servant_n upon_o the_o tomb_n of_o their_o master_n to_o go_v and_o minister_n to_o they_o in_o the_o other_o world_n the_o other_o soul_n that_o consist_v in_o beat_n of_o the_o heart_n have_v two_o sort_n of_o abode_n the_o maboias_n wander_v in_o desert_n and_o wood_n and_o the_o ormiceous_a keep_v along_o the_o sea_n and_o overturn_v vessel_n the_o soul_n of_o warlike_a hero_n go_v into_o the_o fortunate_a island_n where_o the_o arovage_n be_v their_o slave_n bloody_a cruel_a m●n_z go_v out_o of_o this_o life_n eternal_o to_o wander_v in_o dry_a wilderness_n behind_o high_a mountain_n to_o carry_v the_o yoke_n of_o the_o arovage_n a_o people_n that_o be_v expel_v out_o of_o its_o ancient_a abode_n if_o we_o believe_v the_o account_n that_o be_v give_v of_o their_o destruction_n from_o all_o this_o it_o appear_v that_o this_o nation_n acknowledge_v almost_o no_o other_o god_n but_o their_o own_o soul_n of_o which_o they_o have_v very_o near_o the_o same_o sentiment_n that_o the_o ancient_a greek_n have_v of_o their_o demon_n and_o hero_n sect._n 13._o richard_n blome_n a_o english_a author_n have_v publish_v of_o late_a in_o his_o america_n a_o large_a account_n of_o the_o opinion_n and_o practice_n of_o the_o carabe_n where_o he_o speak_v of_o the_o isle_n of_o st_n vincent_n they_o have_v say_v he_o some_o natural_a notion_n of_o a_o deity_n or_o supreme_a be_v but_o who_o be_v too_o much_o please_v with_o the_o enjoyment_n of_o the_o sovereign_a happiness_n to_o disturb_v himself_o with_o the_o wicked_a action_n of_o man_n and_o who_o goodness_n be_v so_o great_a that_o he_o be_v averse_a from_o avenge_a himself_n of_o his_o enemy_n when_o they_o refuse_v to_o pay_v the_o honour_n due_a to_o he_o they_o likewise_o believe_v that_o there_o be_v good_a and_o bad_a spirit_n and_o that_o the_o good_a be_v god_n each_o of_o who_o have_v his_o particular_a admistration_n but_o that_o the_o universe_n be_v not_o create_v by_o they_o though_o every_o one_o of_o they_o may_v be_v the_o creator_n of_o the_o country_n where_o he_o be_v venerate_v and_o which_o he_o govern_v sect._n 14._o they_o never_o call_v upon_o their_o god_n but_o to_o let_v they_o come_v to_o they_o which_o be_v do_v by_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o priest_n and_o for_o the_o 4_o follow_a reason_n first_o to_o be_v avenge_v for_o some_o injury_n receive_v second_o to_o be_v cure_v of_o their_o disease_n three_o to_o learn_v the_o success_n of_o the_o war._n four_o to_o expel_v the_o great_a devil_n or_o rather_o the_o wicked_a god_n mapoia_n who_o they_o never_o adore_v thence_o may_v be_v infer_v that_o they_o believe_v good_a and_o bad_a spirit_n beside_o they_o acknowledge_v the_o immortality_n of_o the_o soul_n which_o opinion_n be_v the_o original_a of_o demon_n and_o hero_n since_o as_o they_o suppose_v they_o be_v the_o soul_n of_o the_o decease_a which_o they_o call_v to_o their_o assistance_n against_o their_o enemy_n sect._n 15._o the_o description_n of_o their_o witchcraft_n be_v to_o be_v find_v in_o the_o same_o place_n after_o this_o manner_n when_o their_o priest_n call_v upon_o many_o of_o their_o god_n together_o they_o seem_v to_o dispute_v and_o quarrel_n with_o one_o another_o so_o far_o as_o to_o come_v to_o blow_n sometime_o they_o hide_v themselves_o among_o dead_a bone_n which_o they_o draw_v out_o of_o grave_n and_o wrap_v up_o in_o cotton_n whence_o they_o utter_v their_o oracle_n they_o use_v that_o witchcraft_n to_o bewitch_v their_o enemy_n for_o which_o purpose_n the_o witch_n must_v have_v something_o that_o have_v belong_v to_o the_o party_n to_o be_v bewitch_v the_o spirit_n seize_v sometime_o upon_o the_o body_n of_o those_o woman_n whence_o they_o give_v formal_a answer_n to_o whatever_o be_v propose_v to_o they_o they_o serve_v up_o meat_n to_o those_o spirit_n in_o place_n separate_v from_o the_o commerce_n that_o be_v keep_v with_o they_o the_o boy_n or_o priest_n that_o have_v bring_v it_o be_v go_v out_o they_o hear_v the_o dish_n move_v and_o the_o devil_n according_a to_o blome_n or_o the_o god_n according_a to_o that_o people_n move_v the_o jaw_n and_o make_v a_o great_a noise_n as_o if_o he_o chew_v the_o meat_n that_o have_v be_v serve_v to_o he_o
notice_n of_o it_o and_o there_o be_v yet_o high_o than_o they_o be_v not_o that_o they_o be_v place_v one_o above_o the_o other_o as_o it_o be_v do_v among_o man_n but_o as_o we_o ordinary_o say_v of_o two_o wise_a person_n that_o one_o be_v wise_a than_o the_o other_o and_o that_o the_o cause_n be_v more_o excellent_a than_o the_o effect_n so_o that_o he_o pretend_v that_o god_n himself_o have_v produce_v those_o of_o the_o first_o dignity_n who_o have_v bring_v for_o h_o those_o of_o the_o second_o and_o these_o those_o of_o the_o three_o and_o so_o forth_o sect._n 8._o jewish_a author_n ordinary_o establish_v ten_o degree_n or_o order_n who_o be_v distinguish_v by_o their_o name_n in_o the_o same_o maimonides_n and_o in_o the_o book_n midrasch_n bereshjit_fw-la descend_v from_o the_o high_a degree_n to_o the_o low_a 1._o chayos_n hakkodesch_n 2._o ofanim_fw-la 3_o oralim_fw-la 4._o chasmalim_fw-la 5._o seraphim_n 6._o malachim_n or_o angel_n 7._o elohim_n 8._o bene_fw-la elohim_n 9_o cherubin_n 10._o yschim_n the_o signification_n of_o most_o of_o the_o name_n be_v very_o uncertain_a and_o far_o fetch_v however_o i_o shall_v translate_v they_o as_o brief_o as_o i_o can_v and_o as_o i_o can_v best_o guess_v by_o the_o explication_n they_o have_v give_v of_o they_o 1._o live_v holy_o 2._o quick_a 3._o powerful_a in_o strength_n 4._o flame_n of_o fire_n 5._o g●owing_v spark_n 6._o messenger_n 7._o go_n 8._o son_n of_o god_n 9_o image_n of_o the_o temple_n 10._o men._n it_o be_v believe_v that_o the_o first_o be_v so_o call_v because_o they_o be_v original_o holy_a in_o a_o more_o excellent_a manner_n than_o man_n and_o that_o by_o their_o influence_n they_o be_v the_o cause_n of_o the_o life_n of_o all_o the_o creature_n inferior_a to_o they_o which_o god_n have_v create_v by_o their_o ministry_n the_o name_n of_o man_n may_v have_v be_v give_v to_o the_o last_o because_o it_o be_v suppose_v that_o they_o use_v sometime_o to_o appear_v by_o the_o order_n of_o god_n in_o a_o human_a shape_n they_o only_o also_o say_v maimonides_n be_v those_o who_o speak_v by_o the_o prophet_n and_o be_v in_o the_o near_v degree_n to_o the_o human_a knowledge_n sect._n 9_o that_o be_v the_o difference_n which_o be_v among_o they_o i_o shall_v yet_o set_v down_o in_o the_o word_n of_o the_o same_o author_n how_o those_o ten_o order_n be_v distinguish_v from_o god_n and_o men._n all_o those_o live_a being_n say_v he_o know_v the_o creator_n in_o a_o excellent_a degree_n of_o knowledge_n each_o in_o reference_n to_o his_o order_n and_o not_o in_o relation_n to_o his_o excellency_n for_o which_o reason_n the_o first_o degree_n can_v conceive_v the_o creator_n such_o as_o he_o be_v in_o himself_o because_o their_o understanding_n be_v too_o short_a to_o attain_v unto_o he_o however_o they_o approach_v near_o to_o he_o than_o the_o being_n of_o a_o inferior_a order_n and_o each_o of_o these_o order_n unto_o the_o 10_o know_v the_o creator_n more_o perfect_o than_o man_n who_o be_v compose_v of_o matter_n and_o form_n sect._n 10._o the_o cabalist_n who_o have_v trace_v out_o the_o way_n to_o the_o magic_n of_o the_o jew_n be_v not_o content_v with_o these_o ten_o order_n but_o divide_v all_o the_o creature_n into_o four_o circle_n the_o one_a be_v the_o circle_n of_o the_o exhalation_n avilos_n call_v otherwise_o zephiros_n light_n so_o much_o exalt_v in_o all_o age_n by_o the_o jewish_a doctor_n who_o will_v not_o have_v they_o call_v either_o creature_n or_o essence_n of_o the_o creator_n but_o perfection_n distinct_a from_o he_o as_o manasse_n ben-israel_n explain_v it_o more_o particular_o put_v they_o into_o parallel_n with_o the_o idea_n of_o plat●_n and_o esteem_v they_o to_o be_v the_o principle_n of_o all_o thing_n he_o count_v 10_o of_o this_o order_n the_o crown_n the_o science_n prudence_n majesty_n valour_n beauty_n victory_n glory_n foundation_n and_o kingdom_n they_o name_v the_o second_o circle_n that_o of_o the_o creation_n in_o which_o be_v the_o angel_n separate_v and_o distinct_a from_o all_o corporality_n and_o divide_v into_o 10_o order_n the_o name_n of_o which_o be_v set_v down_o sect._n 8._o they_o place_n in_o the_o three_o circle_n jetzira_n that_o be_v the_o form_n among_o which_o they_o reckon_v such_o angel_n as_o have_v any_o communication_n with_o body_n the_o four_o circle_n contain_v all_o the_o other_o creature_n name_v alchiia_n or_o compound_v being_n sect._n 11._o if_o i_o will_v relate_v more_o at_o large_a whatever_o the_o jew_n have_v write_v of_o the_o angel_n and_o the_o opinion_n of_o each_o of_o their_o particular_a doctor_n there_o will_v not_o be_v much_o agreement_n betwixt_o what_o i_o shoul_n say_v and_o what_o have_v already_o be_v say_v they_o differ_v so_o much_o from_o one_o another_o however_o here_o follow_v the_o thought_n of_o some_o of_o their_o ringleader_n they_o speak_v of_o three_o sort_n of_o angel_n the_o first_o be_v altogether_o free_a from_o matter_n and_o there_o be_v four_o troop_n of_o that_o sort_n which_o have_v each_o their_o captain_n that_o stand_v at_o one_o of_o the_o corner_n of_o the_o throne_n of_o god_n michael_n be_v on_o the_o right_n gabriel_n on_o the_o left_a vriel_n before_o and_o raphael_n behind_o this_o we_o learn_v from_o rabbi_n eliezer_n in_o his_o four_o chapter_n those_o name_n have_v a_o very_a pregnant_a sense_n michael_n that_o be_v unless_o it_o be_v god_n gabriel_n god_n be_v my_o strength_n vriel_n god_n be_v my_o light_n raphael_n god_n be_v my_o physician_n they_o never_o appear_v to_o the_o eye_n of_o man_n nor_o in_o a_o human_a shape_n unless_o in_o a_o vision_n and_o to_o the_o prophet_n only_o the_o good_a angel_n who_o god_n employ_v in_o the_o administration_n of_o the_o world_n be_v in_o the_o second_o rank_n they_o have_v often_o appear_v to_o the_o prophet_n in_o a_o human_a shape_n they_o dwell_v above_o the_o celestial_a orb_n and_o be_v call_v the_o army_n of_o heaven_n but_o the_o devil_n or_o schediim_v that_o be_v the_o wicked_a angel_n or_o as_o they_o use_v to_o speak_v kacodaimones_n the_o bad_a demon_n of_o who_o mention_n have_v be_v make_v chap._n 2._o sect._n 12._o have_v their_o abode_n under_o the_o moon_n and_o be_v the_o executioner_n of_o god_n wrath_n and_o judgement_n but_o as_o to_o this_o last_o sort_n we_o must_v more_o particular_o inquire_v after_o the_o belief_n of_o the_o jew_n sect._n 12._o they_o call_v the_o devil_n angel_n of_o destruction_n or_o death_n satanim_fw-la satan_n or_o adversary_n philo_z that_o be_v contemporary_a with_o the_o apostle_n will_v best_o teach_v we_o what_o they_o think_v of_o it_o thus_o he_o write_v in_o his_o book_n of_o the_o giant_n moses_n use_v to_o call_v angel_n what_o the_o other_o philosopher_n name_n genii_n here_o he_o take_v the_o ●●rd_n genii_n in_o too_o large_a a_o sense_n or_o he_o confine_v that_o of_o angel_n to_o too_o strict_a a_o signification_n according_a to_o that_o which_o have_v be_v observe_v before_o chap._n 2._o s._n 13_o 14._o they_o be_v pursue_v that_o author_n the_o soul_n that_o fly_v into_o the_o air_n which_o none_o ought_v to_o account_v a_o fable_n and_o therefore_o it_o give_v a_o more_o particular_a explication_n of_o it_o as_o we_o ordinary_o say_v that_o there_o be_v good_a and_o bad_a spirit_n and_o good_a and_o bad_a soul_n it_o be_v the_o same_o with_o the_o angel_n some_o of_o they_o be_v call_v good_a and_o be_v messenger_n that_o go_v to_o and_o fro_o from_o god_n to_o man_n and_o from_o man_n to_o god_n who_o be_v unreproachable_a and_o constant_a in_o their_o excellent_a ministry_n but_o on_o the_o contrary_a there_o be_v other_o that_o be_v profane_a and_o execrable_a and_o may_v well_o be_v call_v damnable_a without_o fear_n of_o lie_v sect._n 13._o the_o jew_n report_v very_o different_o the_o original_n of_o spirit_n manasse_n ben_n israel_n assert_n that_o they_o be_v produce_v by_o god_n himself_o on_o the_o second_o day_n of_o the_o creation_n prob._n 23._o rabbi_n eliezer_n relate_v their_o fall_n in_o these_o word_n chap._n 13._o the_o administer_a angel_n say_v to_o god_n eternal_o bless_v o_o lord_n god_n of_o the_o universe_n what_o be_v man_n that_o thou_o shall_v put_v such_o value_n upon_o he_o what_o be_v he_o beside_o vanity_n for_o he_o can_v but_o somewhat_o reason_n upon_o terrestrial_a thing_n god_n answer_v do_v you_o pretend_v that_o i_o only_o desire_v to_o be_v exalt_v and_o glorify_v by_o you_o here_o above_o i_o be_o the_o same_o there_o below_o that_o i_o be_o here_o who_o be_v it_o among_o you_o that_o can_v call_v all_o the_o creature_n by_o their_o name_n there_o be_v not_o one_o among_o they_o that_o can_v do_v it_o whereupon_o adam_n rise_v and_o name_v all_o the_o creature_n by_o their_o
of_o the_o ancient_a christian_n they_o be_v explain_v more_o at_o large_a chap._n 15_o sect._n 7_o 12_o 23_o 26._o in_o the_o mean_a while_o i_o find_v not_o that_o they_o have_v assert_v any_o thing_n contrary_a to_o the_o opinion_n of_o the_o other_o sect._n 9_o it_o be_v convenient_a to_o say_v also_o something_o of_o purgatory_n the_o spring_n of_o a_o vast_a number_n of_o apparition_n and_o witchcraft_n 1_o whether_o the_o jew_n mahometan_n and_o ancient_a christian_n speak_v clear_o upon_o that_o subject_n or_o obscure_o and_o doubtful_a yet_o they_o all_o agree_v in_o establish_v a_o purge_a fire_n or_o some_o such_o other_o pain_n to_o be_v endure_v such_o be_v the_o pain_n which_o the_o devil_n of_o torment_n inflict_v upon_o the_o jew_n at_o the_o time_n of_o gilgul_n or_o the_o revolution_n of_o soul_n chap._n 12._o sect._n 20._o the_o mahometan_n be_v not_o remote_a from_o that_o opinion_n ch._n 14._o s._n 11._o but_o the_o christian_n ch._n 15._o sect._n 27_o 28_o 34._o or_o at_o least_o part_n of_o they_o have_v blow_v up_o that_o fire_n from_o under_o the_o ash_n though_o the_o other_o who_o number_n be_v far_o great_a have_v not_o the_o least_o inclination_n to_o credit_v it_o 2._o however_o those_o that_o be_v not_o altogether_o remote_a from_o they_o reject_v not_o whole_o the_o apparition_n of_o the_o soul_n separate_v from_o their_o body_n nor_o their_o various_a operation_n to_o which_o justin_n and_o irenaeus_n have_v trace_v out_o the_o way_n for_o they_o as_o we_o have_v see_v ch._n 15._o s._n 7._o sect._n 10._o but_o neither_o the_o jew_n nor_o the_o mahometan_n carry_v exorcism_n and_o conjuration_n to_o so_o great_a a_o height_n as_o the_o christian_n in_o the_o mean_a while_o they_o all_o agree_v in_o this_o 1._o that_o they_o be_v powerful_a upon_o the_o spirit_n by_o the_o mean_n of_o name_n word_n and_o sign_n that_o they_o have_v so_o much_o virtue_n as_o to_o force_v they_o to_o answer_v to_o cast_v they_o out_o or_o to_o turn_v they_o off_o the_o practice_n of_o the_o jew_n ch._n 13._o sect._n 6.11_o those_o of_o the_o mahometan_n ch._n 14._o sect._n 14_o 18._o and_o the_o declaration_n of_o the_o christian_a writer_n ch._n 16._o sect._n 5.10_o make_v it_o sufficient_o evident_a that_o their_o opinion_n be_v not_o much_o different_a as_o to_o this_o point_n though_o the_o last_o bring_v not_o they_o into_o practice_n 2._o the_o reader_n shall_v not_o find_v in_o my_o quotation_n a_o very_a particular_a explication_n of_o magic_n proper_o so_o call_v which_o as_o it_o be_v suppose_v cause_v so_o many_o disturbance_n to_o man_n upon_o earth_n unless_o it_o be_v this_o that_o since_o on_o the_o one_o side_n the_o evil_n produce_v by_o those_o wicked_a spirit_n be_v grant_v and_o on_o the_o other_o their_o obedience_n to_o exorcist_n it_o be_v easy_a to_o infer_v that_o all_o the_o damage_n that_o magician_n cause_n by_o the_o help_n of_o the_o devil_n must_v likewise_o be_v ascribe_v to_o they_o sect._n 11._o when_o we_o compare_v all_o these_o thing_n together_o we_o see_v the_o heathen_n and_o jew_n deliver_v their_o opinion_n as_o from_o hand_n to_o hand_n to_o the_o mahometan_n and_o christian_n so_o that_o we_o easy_o perceive_v that_o both_o jew_n and_o christian_n have_v by_o degree_n and_o insensible_o receive_v the_o opinion_n of_o the_o heathen_n by_o who_o they_o be_v surround_v among_o who_o they_o be_v mix_v and_o from_o who_o the_o christian_n be_v descend_v and_o that_o the_o last_o have_v also_o borrow_v much_o from_o the_o jew_n who_o have_v deliver_v to_o they_o the_o sacred_a write_n with_o most_o of_o their_o particular_a interpretation_n that_o have_v be_v greedy_o swallow_v down_o and_o since_o increase_v to_o a_o great_a excess_n as_o to_o the_o mahometan_n who_o law_n be_v a_o mixture_n of_o heathen_a jewish_a and_o christian_a doctrine_n and_o more_o compose_v of_o what_o be_v evil_a in_o they_o all_o than_o of_o what_o be_v good_a and_o therefore_o store_v with_o more_o error_n than_o truth_n it_o be_v not_o strange_a they_o shall_v have_v so_o much_o agreement_n with_o those_o of_o the_o nation_n we_o speak_v of_o we_o may_v observe_v hereafter_o how_o all_o these_o opinion_n have_v insensible_o be_v cherish_v and_o increase_v by_o popery_n and_o have_v issue_v not_o only_o for_o the_o same_o spring_n but_o also_o from_o another_o whence_o mahomet_n have_v draw_v something_o for_o the_o make_n up_o of_o his_o system_n but_o as_o i_o have_v end_v the_o 11_o chapter_n of_o this_o book_n with_o the_o opinion_n of_o the_o epicure_n i_o think_v it_o convenient_a to_o make_v a_o particular_a chapter_n of_o those_o of_o the_o manichee_n chap._n xviii_o that_o the_o doctrine_n ascribe_v to_o the_o manichee_n be_v a_o mixture_n of_o all_o the_o precede_a and_o the_o original_n of_o the_o opinion_n most_o common_a at_o this_o day_n s._n 1._o if_o it_o be_v absolute_o requisite_a to_o know_v the_o opinion_n of_o the_o ancient_a heretic_n at_o least_o of_o those_o that_o be_v call_v so_o we_o will_v be_v at_o the_o same_o pain_n as_o those_o that_o endeavour_v to_o discover_v they_o for_o their_o own_o book_n that_o be_v then_o condemn_v be_v lose_v it_o be_v not_o reasonable_a blind_o to_o believe_v whatever_o their_o adversary_n say_v of_o they_o who_o zeal_n for_o the_o truth_n be_v often_o mix_v with_o human_a passion_n so_o that_o they_o may_v sometime_o impute_v to_o their_o antagonist_n opinion_n that_o be_v not_o so_o bad_a as_o they_o give_v out_o either_o misunderstanding_n or_o wrest_v they_o perhaps_o st._n austin_n have_v increase_v the_o number_n of_o heresy_n to_o a_o hundred_o for_o fear_v he_o shall_v diminish_v that_o of_o seventy_o which_o epiphanius_n have_v before_o establish_v in_o his_o preface_n and_o 57th_o chapter_n of_o the_o heresy_n for_o if_o celsus_n can_v mark_v in_o the_o most_o remote_a antiquity_n and_o from_o the_o first_o time_n that_o we_o have_v any_o knowledge_n of_o book_n but_o 100_o principal_a doctor_n of_o heathenism_n each_o of_o who_o make_v not_o a_o particular_a sect_n but_o only_o follow_v the_o footstep_n of_o his_o predecessor_n how_o can_v it_o be_v imagine_v that_o christianity_n that_o have_v the_o word_n of_o god_n for_o its_o rule_n shall_v have_v be_v in_o much_o less_o time_n more_o divide_v than_o paganism_n that_o be_v found_v on_o such_o weak_a and_o uncertain_a ground_n sect._n 2._o st._n austin_n it_o seem_v shall_v be_v chief_o consult_v as_o to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o manichee_n since_o he_o himself_o have_v be_v infect_v with_o their_o poison_n and_o have_v particular_o treat_v of_o that_o matter_n in_o his_o 46_o ch._n of_o the_o heresy_n however_o i_o shall_v do_v it_o with_o great_a caution_n by_o the_o reason_n just_a now_o allege_v beside_o that_o these_o word_n of_o his_o preface_n ad_fw-la quod_fw-la vult_fw-la deum_fw-la make_v he_o extreme_o suspect_v for_o he_o say_v that_o in_o his_o little_a book_n of_o heresy_n he_o show_v a_o way_n vnde_fw-la possit_fw-la omnis_fw-la haeresis_fw-la &_o quae_fw-la nota_fw-la est_fw-la &_o quae_fw-la ignota_fw-la vitari_fw-la to_o avoid_v all_o heresy_n whether_o know_v or_o unknown_a for_o how_o can_v one_o provide_v himself_o against_o what_o be_v unknown_a and_o consequent_o signify_v nothing_o nay_o i_o may_v bold_o say_v that_o what_o be_v unknown_a can_v be_v call_v heresy_n since_o whatever_o deserve_v that_o name_n must_v be_v know_v or_o perhaps_o st._n augustine_n meaning_n must_v be_v understand_v in_o this_o sense_n that_o discover_v the_o nature_n and_o genius_n of_o such_o heresy_n as_o be_v already_o know_v he_o have_v furnish_v we_o with_o light_n and_o weapon_n against_o those_o that_o be_v yet_o unknown_a but_o may_v become_v manifest_a hereafter_o however_o this_o be_v not_o the_o place_n to_o insist_v long_o upon_o this_o reason_v we_o shall_v return_v to_o our_o subject_n the_o same_o father_n in_o his_o book_n against_o the_o manichee_n impute_v to_o they_o some_o thing_n quantumlibet_fw-la negent_fw-la ad_fw-la se_fw-la pertinere_fw-la tho'_o they_o deny_v they_o ever_o so_o much_o but_o as_o he_o treat_v not_o distinct_o enough_o of_o all_o their_o opinion_n especial_o those_o that_o belong_v to_o our_o design_n i_o shall_v rather_o follow_v danaeus_n who_o have_v gather_v the_o chief_a point_n of_o their_o belief_n as_o well_o out_o of_o the_o book_n of_o st._n austin_n before_o quote_v and_o the_o rest_n of_o his_o work_n as_o out_o of_o many_o other_o author_n from_o who_o i_o shall_v only_o relate_v what_o may_v be_v subservient_fw-fr to_o our_o subject_n sect._n 3_o as_o to_o god_n and_o the_o spirit_n they_o be_v say_v first_o to_o have_v establish_v two_o principle_n contrary_a to_o each_o other_o one_o of_o which_o be_v good_a and_o the_o author_n and_o original_a of_o all_o good_a and_o the_o
to_o reveal_v it_o to_o the_o rector_n or_o other_o priest_n commission_v by_o the_o bishop_n never_o fail_v to_o fall_v into_o the_o possession_n of_o the_o devil_n to_o who_o the_o monitory_n deliver_v they_o after_o it_o be_v be_v thunder_v out_o and_o that_o the_o devil_n transform_v they_o most_o or_o all_o the_o night_n into_o dog_n cat_n wolf_n goat_n and_o other_o animal_n which_o be_v call_v to_o worry_v as_o a_o wolf_n if_o one_o meet_v in_o the_o night_n some_o wildbeast_n or_o a_o domestic_a stray_n he_o fancy_v to_o have_v meet_v the_o wolf-man_n and_o be_v ready_a to_o swear_v it_o some_o of_o the_o most_o think_v and_o less_o superstitious_a part_n at_o least_o believe_v that_o the_o excommunication_n contain_v in_o those_o monitory_n cut_v off_o from_o the_o communion_n of_o their_o church_n and_o deliver_v to_o the_o demon_n those_o that_o have_v not_o submit_v to_o it_o by_o reveal_v such_o thing_n as_o it_o be_v often_o very_o convenient_a and_o useful_a to_o conceal_v sect._n 18._o as_o all_o these_o thing_n be_v say_v in_o general_a concern_v the_o power_n of_o wicked_a spirit_n so_o certain_a place_n be_v assign_v to_o they_o where_o they_o usual_o produce_v their_o effect_n the_o common_a opinion_n be_v that_o there_o be_v familiar_a spirit_n domestic_a and_o mountainous_a devil_n 1._o the_o familiar_a spirit_n spiritus_fw-la familiares_fw-la be_v those_o who_o always_o keep_v by_o a_o man_n even_o when_o he_o call_v not_o for_o they_o whether_o they_o do_v it_o of_o their_o own_o accord_n or_o that_o they_o have_v be_v hire_v very_o cheap_a for_o that_o purpose_n they_o serve_v he_o faithful_o at_o least_o outward_o whether_o or_o no_o he_o call_v for_o they_o they_o suffer_v themselves_o to_o be_v shut_v up_o in_o ring_n crystal_n chest_n and_o the_o like_a and_o to_o be_v carry_v away_o whither_o soever_o one_o please_v these_o be_v the_o very_a word_n of_o schottus_n pag._n 134._o those_o demon_n in_o glass_n or_o ring_n be_v according_a to_o the_o common_a opinion_n shut_v in_o or_o fasten_v to_o they_o with_o some_o certain_a ceremony_n use_v in_o that_o case_n and_o not_o by_o the_o virtue_n of_o any_o conjuration_n or_o exorcism_n nor_o by_o the_o power_n of_o he_o that_o carry_v they_o as_o it_o be_v believe_v by_o some_o but_o they_o undergo_v this_o willing_o or_o by_o the_o absolute_a order_n of_o the_o prince_n of_o the_o devil_n who_o they_o blind_o obey_v or_o last_o to_o deceive_v man_n more_o easy_o when_o they_o be_v in_o those_o sort_n of_o prison_n and_o have_v be_v carry_v through_o several_a place_n question_n be_v put_v to_o they_o and_o sometime_o they_o be_v force_v to_o speak_v then_o they_o discover_v to_o man_n hide_a thing_n and_o foretell_v those_o that_o be_v to_o come_v it_o be_v believe_v that_o in_o our_o day_n a_o great_a and_o victorious_a prince_n carry_v one_o of_o these_o spirit_n with_o he_o in_o his_o ring_n and_o that_o he_o lose_v his_o sight_n in_o a_o battle_n a_o little_a after_o the_o stone_n that_o be_v in_o the_o ring_n be_v break_v into_o two_o piece_n pag._n 143._o sect._n 19_o schottus_n and_o d●●●io_n relate_v out_o of_o meletius_n what_o be_v ordinary_o say_v concern_v domestic_a devil_n they_o withdraw_v into_o the_o most_o hide_a place_n of_o the_o house_n upon_o pile_n of_o wood_n where_o they_o be_v keep_v with_o the_o most_o delicious_a meat_n because_o they_o carry_v to_o their_o master_n corn_n that_o they_o have_v steal_v from_o other_o people_n barn_n when_o those_o spirit_n intend_v to_o settle_v in_o any_o house_n they_o make_v it_o know_v by_o leap_v up_o stick_n of_o wood_n or_o throw_v dung_n into_o pail_n of_o milk_n if_o the_o master_n of_o the_o house_n take_v notice_n of_o it_o let_v we_o alone_o those_o stick_n and_o the_o dung_n in_o the_o milk_n or_o even_o if_o he_o drink_v of_o the_o milk_n into_o which_o the_o dung_n hat_n be_v throw_v the_o spirit_n appear_v to_o he_o and_o life_n with_o he_o those_o sort_n of_o spirit_n be_v call_v by_o the_o french_a gobelin_n by_o the_o dutch_a guldelkens_n and_o kabautermannekens_n and_o by_o the_o english_a hobgoblin_n they_o appear_v in_o the_o shape_n of_o man_n and_o woman_n as_o little_a as_o dwarf_n or_o such_o as_o pigmy_n be_v former_o imagine_v to_o be_v schottus_n say_v that_o it_o be_v usual_a in_o former_a time_n to_o see_v many_o of_o those_o spirit_n in_o house_n where_o they_o do_v whatever_o be_v necessary_a they_o d_z ess_v horse_n they_o sweep_v the_o house_n carried_z wood_n and_o water_n and_o do_v all_o sort_n of_o service_n pag._n 145._o he_o do_v well_o by_o say_n it_o be_v former_o do_v leave_v he_o shall_v be_v put_v to_o a_o proof_n in_o this_o curious_a age._n sect._n 20._o he_o have_v take_v from_o georgius_n agricola_n the_o description_n he_o make_v of_o mountainous_a devil_n say_v that_o they_o dwell_v in_o the_o mine_n under_o the_o mountain_n that_o they_o be_v cruel_a and_o frightful_a that_o they_o make_v uneasy_a and_o perpetual_o vex_v those_o that_o work_n in_o the_o mine_n some_o call_v they_o the_o little_a hollander_n because_o they_o ordinary_o appear_v little_a scarce_o three_o foot_n high_a with_o a_o old_a wrinkle_a face_n and_o in_o the_o same_o shape_n with_o the_o miner_n clothe_v with_o a_o waistcoat_n and_o apron_n nevertheless_o he_o say_v that_o they_o be_v not_o so_o wicked_a as_o they_o love_v to_o play_v trick_n and_o to_o be_v merry_o roguish_a especial_o when_o they_o will_v persuade_v that_o they_o do_v the_o great_a part_n of_o the_o work_n in_o the_o mine_n when_o all_o be_v do_v his_o opinion_n come_v at_o last_o to_o this_o that_o there_o be_v two_o sort_n of_o that_o kind_n of_o spirit_n some_o be_v good_a and_o the_o other_o bad_a the_o latter_a be_v fear_v and_o detest_a by_o the_o workman_n whereas_o they_o look_v with_o pleasure_n upon_o the_o former_a believe_v they_o to_o be_v of_o good_a augury_n but_o schottus_n be_v willing_a to_o grant_v that_o they_o be_v of_o a_o mean_a order_n betwixt_o man_n and_o spirit_n hold_v they_o for_o bad_a spirit_n what_o good_a soever_o they_o may_v do_v believe_v that_o when_o it_o happen_v so_o they_o be_v force_v to_o it_o by_o god_n or_o that_o they_o do_v it_o crafty_o to_o delude_v man_n pag._n 114._o and_o 149._o sect._n 21._o there_o be_v still_o more_o illusion_n make_v in_o relation_n to_o the_o shape_n the_o devil_n take_v on_o than_o in_o the_o other_o occasion_n abovementioned_a i_o will_v not_o now_o speak_v of_o whole_a army_n that_o be_v believe_v frequent_o to_o appear_v in_o order_n of_o battle_n of_o which_o schottus_n treat_v at_o large_a in_o the_o addition_n to_o his_o second_o book_n p._n 336._o but_o of_o those_o that_o be_v call_v hobgoblin_n and_o fairy_n formal_o our_o people_n speak_v almost_o of_o nothing_o else_o schottus_n write_v thereupon_o p._n 339._o delrio_n say_v that_o there_o be_v a_o sort_n of_o spectres_n that_o appear_v as_o woman_n all_o in_o white_a in_o wood_n and_o meadow_n some_o be_v see_v in_o stable_n with_o wax_n candle_n light_v some_o drop_n of_o which_o they_o let_v fall_v upon_o the_o mains_fw-fr of_o horse_n comb_v and_o twist_v they_o very_o neat_o those_o white_a woman_n be_v also_o call_v sibyl_n and_o it_o be_v say_v that_o one_o of_o they_o name_v haband_n be_v as_o the_o queen_n of_o the_o other_o and_o command_v they_o people_z believe_v their_o apparition_n to_o be_v of_o good_a omen_n but_o the_o doctor_n look_v on_o such_o presage_n as_o old_a woman_n tale_n acknowledge_v in_o the_o mean_a while_n that_o the_o thing_n be_v true_a or_o at_o least_o possible_a and_o schottus_n relate_v p._n 215._o what_o cornelius_n of_o kempen_n say_v assure_v we_o that_o in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o emperor_n lotarius_n that_o be_v about_o 830._o several_a of_o those_o fairy_n be_v to_o be_v find_v in_o friesland_n where_o they_o dwell_v in_o groat_n or_o on_o the_o top_n of_o hill_n and_o mountain_n whence_o they_o descend_v at_o night_n to_o carry_v away_o shepherd_n from_o their_o flock_n child_n from_o their_o cradle_n and_o slip_n both_o into_o their_o cavern_n chap._n xx._n what_o be_v the_o doctrine_n of_o popery_n concern_v apparition_n of_o spirit_n and_o how_o they_o torment_v man_n either_o by_o themselves_o or_o by_o the_o ministry_n of_o other_o men._n sect._n 1_o in_o speak_v of_o this_o last_o kind_n of_o demon_n we_o be_v descend_v by_o degree_n even_o to_o spectre_n and_o phantasm_n but_o first_o we_o have_v observe_v that_o there_o be_v yet_o two_o thing_n to_o treat_v of_o touch_v spirit_n that_o be_v their_o apparition_n to_o man_n and_o their_o operation_n in_o the_o same_o it_o be_v upon_o this_o subject_n of_o apparition_n that_o there_o be_v room_n to_o speak_v of_o
author_n and_o what_o be_v his_o method_n as_o the_o two_o first_o book_n of_o this_o work_n that_o i_o publish_v at_o first_o have_v be_v different_o receive_v for_o reason_n allege_v in_o the_o preface_n it_o will_v not_o be_v amiss_o to_o represent_v to_o the_o reader_n what_o have_v be_v proper_o my_o design_n in_o these_o four_o book_n that_o i_o have_v entitle_v the_o world_n bewitch_v nor_o to_o show_v what_o foundation_n i_o build_v upon_o and_o what_o way_n i_o take_v to_o find_v out_o the_o truth_n for_o althô_o i_o express_v myself_o clear_o enough_o in_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o work_n and_o in_o the_o preface_n to_o the_o first_o part_n i_o know_v nevertheless_o that_o be_v not_o sufficient_a to_o destroy_v the_o prejudice_n wherewith_o the_o learned_a themselves_o appear_v more_o bias_v than_o the_o vulgar_a which_o i_o shall_v never_o have_v think_v but_o it_o seem_v at_o present_a i_o have_v find_v out_o the_o reason_n which_o be_v that_o the_o most_o part_n of_o those_o which_o do_v not_o put_v themselves_o to_o the_o trouble_n to_o pass_v through_o all_o the_o degree_n of_o the_o school_n aspire_v to_o science_n and_o sublime_a knowledge_n but_o for_o their_o particular_a pleasure_n they_o be_v the_o people_n that_o love_n liberty_n and_o to_o who_o it_o matter_n not_o who_o be_v the_o master_n that_o instruct_v they_o provide_v that_o they_o may_v learn_v something_o or_o if_o they_o be_v greedy_a of_o rarity_n they_o have_v not_o so_o much_o respect_n to_o the_o mode_n nor_o to_o that_o which_o be_v new_a or_o ancient_a as_o to_o the_o beauty_n of_o the_o matter_n and_o to_o that_o of_o the_o work_n on_o the_o contrary_a it_o be_v with_o those_o who_o pass_v through_o the_o school_n as_o with_o those_o who_o live_v in_o shop_n where_o every_o one_o have_v his_o way_n every_o master_n have_v his_o method_n in_o the_o work_n he_o make_v in_o one_o town_n they_o make_v the_o same_o thing_n after_o one_o fashion_n and_o in_o another_o after_o another_o when_o one_o be_v take_v up_o with_o the_o mode_n he_o often_o reject_v what_o be_v please_v without_o any_o other_o reason_n then_o because_o it_o be_v not_o as_o common_o use_v in_o the_o world_n and_o we_o have_v a_o strangeness_n for_o all_o novelty_n so_o long_o as_o they_o have_v not_o the_o common_a vogue_n althô_o otherwise_o we_o may_v approve_v they_o and_o have_v they_o cheap_a enough_o but_o as_o soon_o as_o custom_n have_v introduce_v they_o one_o begin_v to_o seek_v they_o out_o and_o to_o be_v disgu_v at_o the_o former_a science_n be_v subject_a to_o the_o same_o inconvenience_n those_o that_o we_o send_v to_o the_o school_n continue_v in_o the_o road_n which_o have_v be_v mark_v out_o to_o they_o for_o their_o exercise_n they_o endeavour_v to_o form_v themselves_o upon_o the_o model_n of_o those_o which_o have_v most_o reputation_n or_o of_o those_o who_o be_v the_o near_a to_o their_o first_o prejudices_fw-la so_o this_o be_v disapprove_v the_o part_n they_o have_v take_v not_o to_o be_v apt_a to_o take_v any_o and_o to_o preserve_v our_o own_o liberty_n and_o thus_o we_o expose_v ourselves_o very_o much_o but_o one_o run_v a_o great_a risk_n if_o willing_a to_o ascend_v high_a and_o search_v thing_n in_o their_o fountain_n it_o happen_v at_o last_o that_o we_o find_v ourselves_o out_o of_o the_o ordinary_a road_n and_o that_o we_o be_v oblige_v to_o take_v another_o hinc_fw-la illae_fw-la lachymae_fw-la from_o thence_o proceed_v all_o disorder_n the_o common_a opinion_n of_o the_o devil_n of_o his_o knowledge_n power_n and_o operation_n and_o of_o people_n which_o be_v accuse_v of_o have_v commerce_n with_o he_o begin_v by_o little_a and_o little_a to_o become_v very_o suspicious_a by_o the_o help_n of_o natural_a light_n which_o i_o have_v common_a with_o other_o which_o be_v strengthen_v and_o purify_v by_o the_o scripture_n so_o after_o i_o have_v well_o examine_v it_o i_o be_v in_o doubt_n whether_o i_o ought_v to_o maintain_v it_o any_o long_o or_o abandon_v it_o not_o only_o by_o reason_n of_o the_o truth_n but_o also_o because_o of_o the_o piety_n which_o it_o seem_v to_o contradict_v my_o conscience_n itself_o compel_v i_o to_o it_o for_o i_o be_v oblige_v to_o answer_v those_o that_o ask_v i_o and_o to_o take_v care_n of_o my_o conduct_n because_o of_o the_o disposition_n i_o see_v the_o people_n in_o it_o be_v the_o duty_n of_o my_o charge_n and_o every_o day_n occasion_n offer_v themselves_o my_o pain_n increase_v every_o moment_n by_o the_o continual_a necessity_n i_o find_v myself_o in_o to_o speak_v and_o act_v as_o other_o do_v or_o to_o oppose_v the_o public_a with_o word_n or_o action_n which_o agree_v not_o with_o my_o character_n which_o be_v to_o be_v complaisant_a and_o to_o agree_v with_o all_o the_o world_n as_o much_o as_o be_v possible_a beside_o i_o find_v not_o as_o yet_o foundation_n enough_o to_o act_v after_o a_o other_o manner_n which_o make_v i_o at_o first_o resolve_v to_o make_v a_o exact_a search_n after_o the_o original_a of_o this_o common_a and_o general_a opinion_n to_o know_v whether_o it_o be_v found_v upon_o truth_n but_o because_o i_o make_v this_o examination_n à_fw-la priore_fw-la and_o not_o à_fw-la posteriore_fw-la as_o they_o in_o the_o school_n i_o have_v propose_v the_o state_n of_o the_o question_n but_o at_o the_o end_n of_o the_o first_o book_n where_o i_o discover_v in_o the_o 22th_o chapter_n how_o many_o of_o the_o opinion_n which_o i_o have_v relate_v which_o be_v all_o those_o that_o ever_o be_v in_o the_o world_n upon_o this_o subject_n the_o protestant_n have_v at_o last_o get_v together_o and_o form_v those_o which_o they_o retain_v to_o this_o day_n in_o the_o 23th_o chapter_n i_o compare_v they_o with_o the_o opinion_n of_o other_o nation_n and_o in_o the_o 24_o chapter_n i_o show_v by_o what_o mean_v they_o have_v be_v introduce_v among_o we_o and_o what_o keep_v we_o so_o strong_o tie_v to_o they_o so_o in_o the_o first_o book_n i_o examine_v what_o be_v the_o rise_n of_o the_o opinion_n concern_v the_o devil_n and_o in_o the_o follow_a book_n i_o discover_v what_o sentiment_n we_o ought_v to_o have_v of_o he_o a_o abridgement_n of_o the_o first_o book_n in_o the_o first_o book_n i_o run_v over_o all_o the_o world_n to_o find_v whence_o this_o opinion_n have_v its_o original_a and_o for_o this_o purpose_n i_o have_v omit_v neither_o time_n nor_o place_n i_o observe_v that_o the_o subject_n ought_v to_o be_v examine_v in_o two_o respect_n in_o respect_n of_o the_o devil_n to_o find_v what_o be_v his_o knowledge_n and_o power_n and_o in_o respect_n of_o man_n to_o see_v what_o they_o learn_v and_o effect_n by_o his_o mean_n but_o because_o these_o thing_n be_v preternatural_a or_o be_v so_o think_v to_o be_v and_o that_o by_o consequence_n they_o be_v know_v only_o to_o god_n i_o have_v judge_v it_o necessary_a to_o know_v what_o be_v the_o opinion_n of_o man_n concern_v the_o divinity_n and_o spirit_n in_o general_a either_o good_a or_o bad_a and_o of_o human_a soul_n separate_v from_o their_o body_n by_o death_n which_o be_v also_o spirit_n i_o make_v a_o search_n of_o all_o these_o thing_n first_o in_o the_o book_n of_o the_o ancient_n and_o afterward_o in_o the_o modern_n of_o all_o religion_n and_o among_o all_o nation_n distinguish_v they_o into_o pagan_n jew_n mahometan_n and_o christian_n in_o reference_n to_o the_o present_a state_n of_o the_o world_n i_o begin_v with_o the_o ancient_a pagan_n which_o be_v for_o the_o most_o part_n greek_n or_o roman_n know_v to_o we_o by_o greek_a and_o latin_a book_n they_o have_v lest_o we_o which_o i_o treat_v of_o in_o the_o 2d_o 3d_o and_o four_o chapter_n for_o there_o be_v very_o few_o history_n of_o other_o country_n and_o other_o people_n which_o be_v come_v to_o our_o knowledge_n there_o you_o see_v what_o they_o believe_v touch_v god_n and_o spirit_n which_o be_v neither_o god_n nor_o human_a soul_n and_o as_o to_o the_o estate_n of_o the_o soul_n after_o death_n you_o read_v there_o also_o what_o mean_v they_o use_v to_o attain_v that_o knowledge_n and_o to_o operate_v thing_n beyond_o the_o power_n of_o nature_n by_o the_o mean_n of_o those_o spirit_n such_o as_o they_o believe_v they_o to_o be_v i_o come_v afterward_o down_o to_o our_o time_n and_o examine_v all_o the_o pagan_n in_o the_o world_n first_o in_o europe_n in_o the_o 6_o chapter_n after_o in_o asin_n in_o the_o seven_o and_o 8_o chapter_n then_o in_o africa_n in_o the_o 9th_o chapter_n and_o at_o last_o in_o america_n in_o the_o 10_o chapter_n which_o give_v i_o occasion_n to_o demonstrate_v in_o the_o 11_o chapter_n that_o the_o pagan_n as_o well_o ancient_a as_o modern_a have_v have_v a_o notion_n of_o the_o divinity_n
in_o this_o second_o examination_n of_o the_o second_o part_n where_o the_o certainty_n of_o the_o knowledge_n which_o proceed_v from_o scripture_n alone_o be_v treat_v of_o i_o be_o nevertheless_o oblige_v to_o employ_v my_o reason_n to_o the_o end_n it_o may_v serve_v i_o to_o examine_v what_o scripture_n contain_v not_o that_o it_o may_v reach_v so_o far_o as_o to_o comprehend_v the_o thing_n themselves_o but_o it_o ought_v nevertheless_o to_o comprehend_v what_o the_o scripture_n itself_o say_v and_o that_o thing_n be_v such_o as_o it_o say_v although_o i_o conceive_v they_o not_o such_o as_o they_o be_v but_o see_v here_o the_o knot_n of_o the_o difficulty_n that_o be_v that_o every_o one_o cry_v out_o that_o the_o scripture_n say_v such_o or_o such_o thing_n because_o he_o conceive_v that_o the_o scripture_n say_v they_o and_o when_o the_o scripture_n may_v be_v understand_v two_o ●●ys_n we_o easy_o embrace_v the_o sense_n which_o best_o suit_n our_o notion_n if_o already_o without_o too_o much_o examination_n we_o have_v suffer_v ourselves_o to_o be_v prejudice_v with_o opinion_n of_o which_o we_o will_v however_o be_v better_o satisfy_v and_o find_v some_o more_o particular_a instruction_n in_o the_o scripture_n it_o be_v not_o seek_v with_o that_o impartiality_n and_o liberty_n of_o mind_n which_o be_v necessary_a but_o we_o still_o incline_v towards_o the_o prejudices_fw-la if_o there_o be_v the_o least_o appearance_n that_o we_o may_v by_o wrest_v the_o scripture_n adapt_v it_o to_o the_o sense_n we_o will_v have_v it_o we_o never_o fail_v to_o do_v all_o our_o endeavour_n in_o order_n thereto_o and_o afterward_o imagine_v to_o have_v find_v there_o sufficient_a proof_n in_o favour_n of_o our_o opinion_n because_o it_o seem_v to_o say_v what_o we_o desire_v as_o we_o see_v two_o counsellor_n explain_v the_o same_o law_n each_o for_o the_o advantage_n of_o his_o client_n and_o that_o they_o never_o want_v reason_n on_o both_o side_n to_o confute_v the_o contrary_a argument_n so_o that_o they_o appear_v each_o to_o have_v the_o right_n on_o his_o side_n and_o that_o it_o be_v very_o difficult_a to_o extricate_v what_o they_o have_v so_o much_o perplex_v but_o it_o be_v say_v that_o i_o myself_o do_v what_o i_o condemn_v in_o other_o and_o for_o i_o i_o maintain_v that_o those_o who_o be_v conscious_a of_o their_o guilt_n and_o worthy_a of_o censure_n cast_v that_o imputation_n upon_o i_o see_v i_o explain_v so_o many_o passage_n in_o another_o sense_n than_o that_o with_o which_o they_o be_v prevent_v without_o any_o other_o reason_n than_o because_o it_o be_v ordinary_o receive_v they_o be_v persuade_v that_o this_o change_n proceed_v in_o i_o from_o the_o same_o cause_n that_o i_o discover_v in_o they_o see_v the_o true_a cause_n that_o make_v they_o say_v i_o wrest_v the_o scripture_n not_o that_o i_o real_o wrest_v it_o but_o rather_o that_o i_o keep_v not_o as_o a_o slave_n to_o their_o interpretation_n but_o i_o make_v say_v they_o a_o false_a supposition_n and_o after_o i_o endeavour_v to_o give_v to_o the_o scripture_n a_o sense_n which_o agree_v to_o that_o supposition_n that_o may_v be_v but_o to_o know_v what_o it_o be_v you_o must_v examine_v after_o what_o manner_n i_o make_v the_o exposition_n of_o the_o scripture_n and_o whether_o i_o turn_v it_o towards_o my_o prejudices_fw-la and_o therefore_o it_o be_v necessary_a that_o i_o explain_v a_o little_a more_o clear_o every_o one_o of_o the_o article_n i_o treat_v of_o the_o principle_n they_o say_v i_o suppose_v be_v that_o a_o spirit_n can_v act_v upon_o a_o body_n nor_o upon_o other_o immaterial_a spirit_n that_o be_v the_o burden_n of_o the_o song_n and_o what_o they_o make_v i_o say_v over_o and_o over_o every_o where_o and_o be_v so_o confident_o publish_v that_o even_o my_o friend_n can_v scarce_o forbear_v credit_v it_o as_o there_o come_v every_o day_n occasion_n which_o make_v i_o know_v it_o it_o be_v a_o prejudice_n that_o pass_v from_o hand_n to_o hand_n from_o one_o party_n to_o another_o it_o insensible_o spread_v itself_o in_o all_o the_o mind_n and_o in_o that_o disposition_n the_o read_n of_o my_o book_n be_v undertake_v but_o they_o seldom_o read_v it_o entire_a from_o one_o end_n to_o the_o other_o as_o it_o will_v be_v but_o just_a and_o necessary_a to_o do_v they_o only_o read_v some_o separate_a place_n viz._n those_o they_o be_v refer_v to_o and_o especial_o those_o in_o which_o i_o dispute_v upon_o the_o operation_n of_o spirit_n for_o i_o may_v bold_o say_v that_o of_o those_o that_o have_v read_v my_o book_n with_o attention_n i_o find_v but_o very_o few_o which_o hold_v the_o same_o discourse_n on_o the_o contrary_a they_o take_v quite_o another_o party_n viz._n that_o of_o truth_n so_o that_o i_o defy_v all_o those_o that_o have_v read_v it_o to_o mark_v so_o much_o as_o one_o place_n where_o i_o put_v as_o a_o principle_n of_o my_o opinion_n touch_v the_o devil_n that_o a_o spirit_n can_v act_v either_o upon_o a_o body_n or_o another_o spirit_n what_o be_v then_o the_o foundation_n of_o this_o noise_n which_o be_v so_o strong_o and_o so_o general_o spread_v abroad_o and_o which_o be_v the_o cause_n of_o the_o great_a prosecution_n that_o be_v make_v against_o i_o it_o be_v this_o general_a prejudice_n which_o proceed_v from_o the_o common_a exposition_n of_o the_o passage_n of_o scripture_n upon_o this_o that_o be_v that_o a_o spirit_n as_o a_o spirit_n and_o so_o much_o the_o more_o as_o it_o be_v a_o spirit_n can_v without_o body_n act_n upon_o all_o sort_n of_o body_n and_o upon_o other_o spirit_n i_o require_v proof_n of_o this_o thesis_n and_o because_o this_o demand_n be_v unthought_a of_o and_o extraordinary_a and_o upon_o which_o by_o consequence_n every_o one_o be_v not_o prepare_v my_o demand_n be_v take_v for_o a_o negative_a but_o before_o i_o lay_v myself_o that_o foundation_n which_o ordinary_o be_v not_o call_v in_o question_n i_o examine_v first_o the_o ground_n upon_o which_o these_o people_n themselves_o rest_v their_o opinion_n or_o upon_o what_o they_o ought_v to_o establish_v it_o according_a to_o the_o idea_n they_o have_v of_o spirit_n i_o say_v according_a to_o the_o idea_n they_o have_v of_o spirit_n for_o whether_o according_a to_o the_o principle_n of_o descartes_n they_o distinguish_v they_o from_o body_n the_o more_o neat_o than_o other_o philosopher_n do_v or_o that_o they_o gross_o attribute_v something_o corporeal_a to_o they_o these_o two_o idea_n nevertheless_o proceed_v as_o yet_o equal_o from_o that_o they_o conceive_v the_o operation_n of_o spirit_n upon_o external_a object_n whether_o body_n or_o other_o spirit_n as_o a_o property_n of_o the_o spiritual_a nature_n and_o from_o that_o they_o include_v they_o in_o the_o notion_n they_o have_v of_o that_o nature_n and_o it_o be_v by_o this_o mean_n that_o instead_o of_o consider_v the_o body_n as_o a_o instrument_n which_o be_v necessary_a to_o the_o operation_n of_o spirit_n or_o at_o least_o proper_a to_o they_o they_o look_v upon_o it_o as_o a_o obstacle_n to_o the_o liberty_n and_o virtue_n of_o the_o operation_n of_o a_o spiritual_a nature_n thence_o come_v that_o every_o body_n cry_v ●ut_v so_o differrent_o against_o i_o some_o say_n that_o descartes_n philosophy_n have_v spoil_v i_o and_o that_o be_v the_o fruit_n which_o be_v reap_v by_o his_o follower_n desire_v to_o cast_v upon_o it_o the_o error_n that_o they_o accuse_v i_o of_o other_o who_o be_v in_o the_o same_o prejudice_n yet_o be_v cartesian_n at_o bottom_n give_v out_o that_o i_o understand_v not_o the_o philosophy_n of_o descartes_n but_o whatever_o my_o learning_n and_o experience_n be_v i_o intend_v to_o have_v to_o do_v but_o with_o sensible_a people_n and_o leave_v the_o other_o at_o full_a liberty_n to_o pass_v upon_o the_o doctrine_n i_o teach_v such_o judgement_n as_o they_o please_v a_o abridgement_n of_o the_o second_o book_n as_o to_o what_o concern_v my_o second_o book_n see_v the_o method_n i_o have_v take_v i_o begin_v with_o the_o distinction_n of_o name_n in_o fix_v at_o first_o what_o must_v be_v understand_v by_o a_o body_n and_o a_o spirit_n to_o avoid_v all_o equivocation_n which_o i_o have_v do_v in_o the_o first_o chapter_n i_o speak_v of_o god_n in_o the_o second_o prove_a not_o only_o that_o the_o supreme_a be_v which_o i_o denote_v by_o that_o word_n be_v only_o one_o but_o also_o that_o there_o be_v not_o the_o least_o communion_n between_o it_o and_o create_v thing_n direct_o confute_v the_o opinion_n of_o spinosa_n upon_o this_o subject_n which_o i_o pretend_v to_o do_v with_o more_o force_n and_o evidence_n than_o any_o hitherto_o because_o ordinary_o they_o undertake_v to_o demonstrate_v by_o the_o most_o perfect_a and_o incomprehensible_a essence_n of_o god_n the_o manner_n and_o virtue_n of_o the_o operation_n
of_o create_a spirit_n which_o i_o absolute_o reject_v as_o a_o way_n which_o be_v use_v to_o lead_v we_o into_o error_n by_o consequence_n i_o can_v admit_v the_o argument_n which_o be_v take_v from_o the_o nature_n of_o god_n to_o demonstrate_v in_o what_o manner_n act_v a_o spirit_n which_o be_v his_o creature_n and_o have_v nothing_o common_a with_o he_o but_o the_o name_n after_o in_o the_o three_o chapter_n i_o prove_v by_o argument_n draw_v from_o the_o sovereign_a perfection_n of_o god_n that_o there_o be_v none_o of_o those_o sort_n of_o spirit_n that_o the_o pagan_n esteem_v to_o be_v god_n and_o ediator_n of_o man_n towards_o the_o supreme_a divinity_n because_o the_o reason_n of_o those_o that_o ground_n that_o belief_n upon_o the_o perfection_n of_o god_n be_v direct_o opposite_a to_o this_o perfection_n we_o then_o have_v take_v off_o the_o imaginary_a spirit_n i_o come_v to_o those_o which_o we_o certain_o know_v to_o exist_v that_o be_v our_o soul_n that_o be_v a_o part_n of_o ourselves_o and_o which_o by_o consequence_n be_v better_o know_v to_o we_o by_o our_o own_o experience_n this_o be_v treat_v of_o in_o the_o four_o chapter_n where_o i_o prove_v as_o much_o as_o be_v possible_a their_o immortality_n and_o that_o they_o subsist_v even_o out_o of_o the_o body_n i_o employ_v for_o this_o purpose_n reason_n and_o scripture_n because_o they_o be_v two_o way_n that_o equal_o conduct_v we_o to_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o soul_n the_o first_o by_o experience_n and_o by_o our_o own_o consciousness_n and_o the_o second_o by_o the_o particular_a instruction_n god_n give_v we_o of_o the_o estate_n of_o the_o soul_n after_o this_o life_n but_o i_o quote_v not_o the_o scripture_n in_o this_o part_n of_o my_o treatise_n where_o i_o examine_v but_o what_o concern_v nature_n only_o neither_o do_v i_o judge_v it_o necessary_a to_o do_v it_o afterward_o because_o it_o be_v a_o point_n that_o a_o christian_a look_n upon_o as_o already_o sufficient_o establish_v and_o suppose_v it_o when_o he_o will_v engage_v in_o a_o dispute_n upon_o this_o subject_n beside_o i_o reject_v as_o superstition_n and_o fable_n whatever_o proceed_v from_o the_o invention_n of_o man_n especial_o of_o the_o heathen_n which_o be_v the_o matter_n of_o the_o five_o chapter_n so_o we_o come_v to_o know_v with_o certainty_n that_o such_o a_o spirit_n that_o be_v the_o soul_n which_o true_o exist_v have_v a_o body_n with_o which_o it_o live_v and_o without_o which_o it_o may_v still_o live_v and_o to_o reject_v all_o the_o other_o spirit_n of_o who_o the_o great_a part_n of_o the_o world_n false_o believe_v the_o existence_n but_o beside_o those_o pagan_a opinion_n we_o hear_v every_o day_n mention_v make_v of_o angel_n not_o only_o by_o christian_n but_o also_o by_o jew_n and_o mahometan_n the_o question_n be_v whether_o reason_n alone_o be_v capable_a to_o discover_v to_o we_o that_o there_o be_v such_o spirit_n destitute_a of_o a_o proper_a and_o peculiar_a body_n upon_o this_o point_n i_o show_v in_o the_o six_o chapter_n that_o our_o understanding_n without_o the_o help_n of_o scripture_n can_v penetrate_v far_o than_o to_o comprehend_v that_o it_o be_v possible_a but_o not_o certain_a that_o there_o be_v spirit_n for_o this_o reason_n i_o have_v not_o judge_v it_o necessary_a to_o examine_v the_o operation_n of_o these_o spirit_n upon_o body_n or_o upon_o the_o other_o spirit_n because_o it_o seem_v to_o i_o ridiculous_a to_o trouble_v one_o self_n with_o the_o examination_n of_o the_o operation_n of_o creature_n the_o existence_n of_o which_o be_v not_o establish_v as_o certain_a and_o therefore_o i_o have_v speak_v in_o the_o first_o edition_n but_o by_o the_o way_n in_o verse_n which_o be_v at_o present_a the_o seven_o sect._n of_o the_o six_o chapter_n and_o therefore_o it_o be_v manifest_v how_o wrongful_o many_o people_n will_v persuade_v themselves_o that_o i_o have_v compose_v my_o work_n only_o to_o deny_v the_o operation_n of_o spirit_n upon_o body_n and_o upon_o other_o spirit_n and_o beside_o that_o i_o ground_n upon_o this_o negative_a all_o my_o explication_n of_o the_o passage_n of_o scripture_n but_o that_o i_o may_v avoid_v this_o persecution_n for_o the_o future_a i_o think_v fit_a to_o insert_v in_o the_o new_a edition_n that_o be_v make_v of_o my_o book_n a_o whole_a chapter_n between_o the_o six_o and_o seven_o so_o that_o this_o new_a chapter_n be_v at_o present_a the_o seven_o and_o the_o seven_o be_v the_o eight_o and_o so_o of_o the_o other_o follow_v there_o i_o pretend_v clear_o to_o show_v that_o the_o proof_n relate_v upon_o that_o subject_n strike_v not_o at_o all_o to_o the_o end_n and_o can_v be_v consider_v as_o true_a proof_n which_o i_o mean_v as_o to_o what_o concern_v nature_n and_o as_o to_o what_o human_a reason_n may_v conceive_v of_o itself_o as_o destitute_a of_o help_n from_o the_o word_n of_o god_n after_o that_o i_o come_v to_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o then_o i_o employ_v reason_n no_o more_o but_o keep_v to_o the_o scripture_n only_o and_o i_o search_v in_o it_o what_o it_o will_v teach_v i_o touch_v spirit_n which_o be_v now_o the_o question_n there_o i_o find_v that_o under_o the_o name_n of_o angel_n it_o give_v we_o to_o understand_v such_o spirit_n as_o be_v the_o minister_n of_o god_n towards_o other_o creature_n but_o there_o be_v nothing_o discover_v to_o we_o touch_v their_o essence_n neither_o be_v their_o any_o thing_n in_o the_o history_n of_o the_o creation_n as_o to_o their_o original_a or_o the_o manner_n of_o their_o fall_n for_o which_o reason_n part_n of_o they_o be_v from_o the_o beginning_n reject_v from_o god_n notwithstanding_o the_o scripture_n put_v these_o two_o thing_n for_o certain_a which_o be_v the_o subject_n of_o the_o eight_o and_o nine_o chapter_n i_o consider_v afterward_o the_o property_n and_o operation_n that_o the_o scripture_n attribute_n to_o they_o and_o i_o endeavour_v to_o know_v what_o be_v their_o proper_a nature_n their_o power_n upon_o other_o creature_n either_o spiritual_a or_o corporeal_a but_o the_o passage_n that_o speak_v of_o these_o thing_n do_v not_o appear_v to_o i_o to_o have_v be_v understand_v otherwise_o than_o those_o that_o attribute_n also_o to_o certain_a man_n that_o be_v to_o prophet_n and_o apostle_n the_o work_n that_o they_o have_v do_v in_o dispense_n the_o miracle_n of_o god_n that_o which_o give_v i_o occasion_n to_o say_v that_o as_o this_o dispensation_n surpass_v the_o force_n of_o those_o to_o who_o it_o be_v entrust_v it_o can_v make_v we_o know_v what_o be_v their_o proper_a nature_n whence_o i_o take_v occasion_n to_o infer_v the_o same_o thing_n touch_v angel_n this_o be_v in_o the_o ten_o and_o eleven_o chapter_n that_o which_o can_v not_o be_v discover_v by_o the_o mean_n of_o the_o name_n original_a or_o operation_n of_o those_o spirit_n i_o endeavour_v to_o learn_v by_o the_o mean_n of_o their_o order_n of_o which_o be_v make_v a_o ample_a mention_n in_o the_o twelve_o fifteen_o and_o nineteenth_o chapter_n of_o my_o first_o book_n but_o i_o draw_v not_o any_o light_n from_o thence_o save_o that_o angel_n as_o well_o good_a as_o bad_a have_v each_o their_o head_n that_o the_o prince_n of_o good_a angel_n be_v call_v michael_n and_o that_o of_o the_o bad_a named_z diabolus_fw-la the_o devil_n that_o be_v in_o the_o two_o and_o twenty_o chapter_n yet_o i_o leave_v it_o not_o here_o i_o consider_v again_o that_o the_o scripture_n attribute_n in_o many_o place_n some_o particular_a administration_n to_o angel_n i_o examine_v to_o know_v what_o it_o be_v first_o as_o to_o the_o good_a angel_n in_o general_a in_o the_o thirteen_o chapter_n who_o the_o scripture_n often_o make_v appear_v and_o always_o for_o particular_a revelation_n to_o the_o faithful_a either_o to_o work_v extraordinary_a miracle_n or_o execute_v god_n judgement_n upon_o man_n by_o punishment_n or_o by_o deliverance_n but_o i_o conceive_v not_o that_o what_o be_v say_v of_o this_o ministry_n be_v different_a from_o what_o be_v relate_v of_o that_o of_o those_o holy_a man_n who_o have_v be_v employ_v in_o the_o work_n of_o god_n and_o his_o miracle_n that_o they_o in_o no_o wise_a operate_v by_o their_o own_o virtue_n by_o consequence_n i_o find_v nothing_o as_o yet_o which_o may_v give_v i_o a_o certain_a knowledge_n of_o the_o proper_a angel_n their_o power_n or_o their_o operation_n afterward_o i_o come_v to_o a_o more_o particular_a examination_n of_o the_o principle_n passage_n especial_o of_o the_o manner_n of_o speak_v of_o these_o three_o person_n which_o appear_v to_o abraham_n of_o the_o two_o other_o that_o appear_v to_o lot_n genesis_n chapter_n the_o eighteen_o and_o nineteenth_o and_o in_o make_v reflection_n upon_o this_o history_n and_o compare_v it_o with_o other_o instruction_n of_o the_o holy_a
scripture_n it_o seem_v to_o i_o that_o i_o be_o in_o the_o right_a to_o conclude_v that_o those_o angel_n that_o be_v to_o say_v those_o messenger_n be_v man_n as_o they_o name_v themselves_o not_o be_v able_a in_o the_o mean_a while_n to_o determine_v what_o must_v be_v understand_v by_o the_o angel_n of_o the_o face_n of_o god_n which_o conduct_v israel_n in_o the_o desert_n exod._n 23_o chap._n and_o by_o the_o angel_n by_o who_o god_n give_v his_o law_n upon_o mount_n sinai_n i_o propose_v only_o my_o thought_n and_o what_o seem_v to_o i_o may_v be_v understand_v by_o it_o by_o a_o collation_n of_o the_o passage_n of_o the_o holy_a writ_n which_o make_v mention_v of_o the_o manner_n of_o that_o divine_a conduct_n of_o the_o israelite_n in_o the_o desert_n chap._n 15._o i_o pass_v far_o and_o examine_v what_o be_v say_v in_o the_o scripture_n concern_v the_o angel_n with_o relation_n to_o some_o certain_a person_n nation_n and_o country_n and_o i_o conclude_v from_o thence_o that_o what_o have_v ever_o be_v various_o write_v upon_o this_o subject_n by_o particular_a author_n be_v not_o found_v upon_o scripture_n because_o all_o the_o passage_n make_v use_v of_o to_o ground_v those_o opinion_n speak_v but_o figurative_o at_o last_o come_v to_o the_o devil_n and_o to_o the_o rest_n of_o evil_a angel_n i_o see_v that_o this_o name_n have_v be_v give_v as_o well_o to_o ill_a man_n as_o to_o evil_a spirit_n and_o even_o first_o to_o wicked_a men._n so_o i_o examine_v in_o the_o 17_o 18_o and_o 19_o chapter_n what_o may_v most_o convenient_o be_v understand_v by_o the_o chief_a of_o evil_a spirit_n but_o in_o make_v the_o examination_n of_o all_o the_o particular_a passage_n which_o be_v usual_o apply_v to_o the_o devil_n i_o find_v that_o the_o name_n of_o satan_n or_o devil_n be_v use_v in_o some_o of_o these_o passage_n and_o that_o of_o daemon_n and_o of_o daemonium_fw-la in_o some_o other_o and_o that_o there_o be_v several_a denomination_n ordinary_o apply_v to_o the_o devil_n which_o oblige_v i_o to_o double_v my_o care_n that_o i_o may_v discover_v what_o ought_v to_o be_v understand_v by_o devil_n especial_o in_o the_o history_n of_o the_o fall_n of_o the_o first_o adam_n and_o in_o that_o of_o the_o temptation_n of_o the_o second_o this_o be_v the_o matter_n of_o the_o 20_o and_o the_o 21_o chapter_n the_o other_o passage_n which_o contain_v the_o name_n of_o satan_n appear_v to_o i_o to_o be_v different_a from_o these_o of_o which_o i_o treat_v in_o the_o 23_o 24_o and_o 25_o chapter_n i_o examine_v afterward_o in_o the_o 26_o to_o the_o 30_o what_o be_v the_o daemonia_fw-la and_o those_o that_o be_v call_v possess_v and_o last_o in_o the_o 31st_o chapter_n what_o must_v be_v understand_v in_o all_o the_o other_o passage_n where_o instead_o of_o the_o name_n of_o devil_n and_o of_o demon_n other_o quite_o different_a be_v use_v and_o therefore_o as_o the_o principal_a operation_n attribute_v to_o the_o devil_n in_o scripture_n consist_v in_o the_o fall_n of_o the_o first_o man_n and_o the_o assault_n he_o make_v upon_o our_o saviour_n in_o the_o desert_n thence_o i_o take_v occasion_n to_o examine_v whether_o those_o account_n may_v serve_v to_o the_o opinion_n of_o the_o power_n of_o this_o evil_a spirit_n and_o of_o the_o power_n of_o his_o operation_n upon_o man_n but_o it_o seem_v to_o i_o that_o in_o the_o narration_n of_o moses_n touch_v the_o fall_n of_o man_n that_o happen_v by_o the_o discourse_n of_o a_o serpent_n nothing_o be_v say_v that_o aught_o to_o carry_v i_o to_o conclude_v that_o the_o devil_n himself_o can_v act_v immediate_o upon_o the_o soul_n and_o body_n of_o man._n here_o i_o keep_v to_o that_o discovery_n without_o go_v any_o further_o those_o that_o be_v of_o another_o opinion_n find_v that_o this_o conclusion_n be_v draw_v from_o that_o relation_n with_o a_o full_a evidence_n and_o ask_v how_o the_o fall_n of_o man_n can_v happen_v otherwise_o render_v themselves_o guilty_a of_o the_o same_o fault_n they_o reproach_v i_o with_o by_o pretend_v to_o know_v themselves_o how_o the_o thing_n come_v to_o pass_v and_o to_o be_v able_a to_o render_v the_o reason_n of_o it_o but_o he_o that_o judge_n ought_v not_o to_o speak_v of_o it_o so_o positive_o declare_v he_o know_v nothing_o of_o it_o and_o find_v nothing_o reveal_v upon_o that_o point_n he_o be_v present_o accuse_v of_o deny_v the_o same_o thing_n itself_o and_o of_o not_o believe_v the_o matter_n of_o fact_n because_o he_o grant_v he_o be_v not_o acquaint_v with_o the_o manner_n of_o it_o the_o celebrate_a voetius_fw-la have_v however_o explain_v himself_o upon_o this_o subject_n very_o near_o as_o i_o do_v for_o in_o the_o first_o part_n of_o his_o dispute_n pag._n 915._o speak_v of_o the_o fall_n of_o man_n he_o say_v upon_o the_o question_n to_o know_v how_o and_o in_o what_o manner_n it_o be_v not_o possible_a to_o give_v so_o satisfactory_a a_o answer_n but_o it_o may_v be_v see_v that_o there_o remain_v still_o something_o which_o the_o weakness_n of_o our_o understanding_n can_v comprehend_v nor_o likewise_o how_o the_o devil_n seduce_v eve_n examine_v the_o temptation_n of_o our_o lord_n by_o the_o devil_n i_o agree_v that_o the_o tempter_n be_v the_o evil_a spirit_n and_o i_o believe_v that_o the_o literal_a sense_n may_v very_o well_o pass_v suppose_v that_o it_o be_v a_o wicked_a man_n so_o call_v but_o i_o show_v that_o understand_v these_o word_n of_o the_o evil_a spirit_n literal_o the_o quite_o contrary_a may_v be_v infer_v from_o what_o be_v ordinary_o gather_v from_o thence_o thereupon_o if_o i_o be_v ask_v how_o i_o understand_v and_o explain_v that_o narration_n i_o answer_v that_o i_o believe_v that_o the_o thing_n be_v do_v in_o a_o vision_n see_v how_o schultetus_fw-la speak_v who_o as_o well_o as_o voetius_fw-la have_v be_v a_o member_n of_o the_o national_a synod_n of_o dordrecht_n in_o his_o exercit._n evang._n lib._n 11._o chap._n 3._o the_o question_n be_v to_o know_v whether_o the_o thing_n real_o happen_v or_o in_o a_o vision_n he_o answer_n it_o be_v in_o a_o vision_n and_o after_o give_v some_o reason_n which_o however_o i_o do_v not_o judge_v so_o strong_a as_o i_o none_o have_v right_a to_o require_v from_o i_o that_o i_o shall_v precise_o explain_v myself_o upon_o the_o passage_n of_o scripture_n and_o upon_o other_o from_o which_o they_o suppose_v to_o draw_v strong_a proof_n in_o favour_n of_o that_o opinion_n the_o truth_n of_o which_o i_o here_o call_v in_o question_n nor_o that_o i_o shall_v declare_v what_o sense_n i_o give_v they_o especial_o to_o those_o who_o mention_v the_o fall_n of_o the_o first_o man_n in_o paradise_n and_o the_o temptation_n of_o our_o lord_n in_o the_o desert_n for_o i_o have_v have_v no_o other_o design_n on_o this_o occasion_n but_o to_o examine_v whether_o these_o passage_n understand_v according_a to_o the_o letter_n afford_v sufficient_a proof_n to_o make_v we_o admit_v the_o consequence_n that_o be_v usual_o draw_v from_o thence_o and_o to_o establish_v the_o common_a opinion_n which_o be_v have_v of_o the_o craft_n and_o power_n of_o the_o devil_n to_o act_v upon_o men._n if_o it_o be_v necessary_a to_o proceed_v far_o and_o to_o examine_v all_o these_o passage_n to_o the_o bottom_n in_o order_n to_o penetrate_v their_o true_a sense_n a_o whole_a book_n scarce_o suffice_v i_o refuse_v not_o however_o to_o do_v it_o and_o hope_v to_o undertake_v it_o as_o soon_o as_o the_o divine_a providence_n will_v furnish_v i_o with_o occasion_n and_o leisure_n i_o show_v as_o to_o other_o passage_n of_o the_o holy_a writ_n that_o they_o can_v be_v understand_v of_o evil_a spirit_n but_o only_o of_o ill_a man_n and_o of_o the_o work_n of_o god_n not_o of_o those_o of_o the_o devil_n tho'_o without_o hesitate_v these_o passage_n be_v ordinary_o apply_v to_o the_o devil_n i_o maintain_v in_o the_o 22_o chapter_n that_o it_o be_v a_o man_n which_o bring_v david_n to_o number_v the_o people_n chap._n 23._o that_o the_o passage_n wherein_o the_o fight_n of_o michael_n against_o the_o devil_n be_v mention_v be_v very_o obscure_a and_o that_o there_o be_v a_o great_a uncertainty_n in_o the_o present_a opinion_n upon_o that_o point_n as_o all_o divine_n grant_v and_o that_o by_o consequence_n nothing_o can_v be_v conclude_v from_o they_o especial_o if_o it_o be_v suppose_v as_o some_o learned_a do_v that_o the_o devil_n be_v but_o a_o mere_a man._n i_o show_v in_o chap._n 24._o that_o the_o spirit_n of_o python_n that_o be_v speak_v of_o in_o the_o 16_o chapter_n of_o the_o act_n of_o the_o apostle_n can_v no_o way_n be_v apply_v to_o the_o devil_n neither_o do_v the_o famous_a history_n of_o job_n always_o allege_v one_o of_o the_o first_o as_o a_o
proof_n of_o his_o power_n be_v well_o examine_v in_o its_o whole_a extent_n attribute_n to_o he_o the_o least_o part_n in_o the_o evil_n which_o by_o the_o providence_n of_o god_n happen_v to_o that_o holy_a man._n as_o to_o the_o angel_n of_o satan_n which_o torment_v st._n paul_n i_o place_v he_o in_o the_o same_o rank_n with_o the_o fight_n against_o michael_n that_o be_v in_o uncertainty_n there_o be_v no_o ground_n to_o pretend_v to_o a_o perfect_a understanding_n of_o this_o passage_n and_o therefore_o i_o look_v upon_o it_o as_o insufficient_a to_o prove_v any_o thing_n which_o be_v the_o matter_n of_o the_o 25_o chapter_n but_o as_o the_o possess_a be_v universal_o allege_v for_o a_o certain_a proof_n of_o the_o great_a power_n of_o the_o devil_n and_o that_o we_o read_v so_o many_o time_n in_o scripture_n that_o the_o evil_a spirit_n have_v be_v cast_v out_o by_o our_o saviour_n jesus_n christ_n i_o beslow_v five_o chapter_n upon_o examine_v what_o be_v in_o it_o i_o see_v that_o the_o term_n of_o diabolus_fw-la which_o we_o translate_v devil_n be_v not_o find_v in_o any_o of_o the_o passage_n in_o which_o those_o relation_n be_v contain_v but_o only_o that_o of_o daemon_n which_o i_o illustrate_v in_o the_o 26_o chapter_n in_o the_o 27_o i_o show_v that_o the_o most_o dangerous_a disease_n especial_o those_o of_o the_o head_n be_v usual_o ascribe_v to_o demon_n or_o even_o call_v by_o the_o name_n of_o demon_n and_o in_o the_o 28_o that_o our_o saviour_n jesus_n christ_n have_v not_o change_v the_o usual_a way_n of_o speak_v but_o make_v use_v of_o they_o according_a to_o the_o custom_n of_o that_o time_n neither_o do_v he_o always_o immediate_o confute_v all_o the_o error_n in_o the_o 29_o and_o 30_o chapter_n so_o that_o the_o cure_n of_o daemonia_fw-la be_v not_o proper_o a_o expulsion_n of_o devil_n but_o a_o miraculous_a cure_n of_o incurable_a disease_n i_o come_v after_o to_o other_o passage_n of_o scripture_n where_o neither_o the_o name_n of_o devil_n satan_n or_o demon_n be_v make_v use_n of_o but_o those_o of_o the_o prince_n of_o the_o world_n prince_n of_o the_o power_n of_o the_o air_n prince_n of_o this_o age_n of_o lordship_n power_n dominion_n and_o the_o like_a and_o i_o show_v that_o there_o be_v not_o the_o least_o cause_n to_o apply_v they_o to_o the_o devil_n but_o that_o the_o style_n of_o scripture_n lead_v we_o of_o itself_o to_o understand_v by_o all_o these_o name_v a_o certain_a order_n of_o person_n have_v then_o examine_v all_o i_o can_v not_o conclude_v that_o the_o scripture_n consider_v true_o and_o without_o prejudice_n attribute_n to_o the_o devil_n this_o power_n and_o these_o operation_n which_o the_o prevention_n of_o commentator_n and_o translator_n discover_v in_o it_o i_o grant_v it_o have_v be_v very_o troublesome_a to_o i_o to_o be_v oblige_v to_o take_v this_o party_n and_o to_o confute_v and_o censure_v very_o famous_a man_n and_o most_o approve_a interpreter_n it_o even_o seem_v to_o i_o that_o i_o expose_v myself_o very_o much_o because_o i_o know_v that_o a_o more_o advantageous_a opinion_n be_v have_v of_o those_o that_o be_v not_o know_v and_o that_o a_o prophet_n be_v neither_o esteem_v in_o his_o own_o time_n nor_o in_o his_o own_o country_n for_o this_o reason_n i_o do_v first_o resolve_v not_o to_o meddle_v with_o those_o of_o scripture_n where_o i_o find_v myself_o constrain_v to_o go_v from_o the_o exposition_n ordinary_o receive_v but_o at_o last_o consider_v that_o my_o work_n will_v appear_v but_o imperfect_a and_o that_o they_o will_v not_o fail_v to_o object_v those_o famous_a passage_n to_o which_o i_o shall_v be_v then_o oblige_v to_o answer_v i_o at_o last_o prevail_v with_o myself_o to_o venture_v in_o the_o main_a sea_n and_o to_o fly_v before_o none_o that_o come_v to_o attack_v i_o further_o i_o do_v not_o believe_v that_o any_o one_o can_v show_v i_o that_o the_o interpretation_n that_o i_o make_v be_v found_v upon_o the_o light_n of_o reason_n and_o humane_a understanding_n or_o upon_o any_o other_o particular_a proposition_n i_o shall_v have_v assert_v such_o as_o this_o be_v say_v to_o be_v that_o a_o spirit_n can_v act_v upon_o a_o body_n nor_o upon_o other_o spirit_n i_o have_v make_v use_n of_o for_o this_o effect_n but_o of_o the_o ordinary_a mean_n that_o the_o knowledge_n of_o language_n afford_v we_o so_o there_o be_v no_o more_o unjust_a accusation_n then_o that_o which_o be_v raise_v against_o i_o upon_o this_o subject_n and_o therefore_o when_o i_o compare_v with_o the_o analogy_n of_o the_o whole_a scripture_n with_o the_o ground_n of_o our_o divinity_n and_o with_o the_o rule_n of_o true_a piety_n whatever_o be_v ordinary_o publish_v concern_v the_o understanding_n of_o the_o devil_n his_o power_n his_o operation_n his_o apparition_n in_o divers_a place_n in_o the_o world_n his_o dominion_n and_o the_o kingdom_n which_o he_o raise_v against_o that_o of_o jesus_n christ_n i_o conclude_v not_o only_o that_o they_o be_v not_o ground_v upon_o these_o three_o principle_n but_o also_o be_v consider_v with_o all_o the_o necessary_a attention_n they_o appear_v contrary_a to_o they_o in_o this_o place_n i_o begin_v to_o enter_v into_o dispute_n and_o to_o draw_v my_o conclusion_n from_o argument_n which_o the_o scripture_n and_o reason_n furnish_v i_o with_o have_v by_o the_o mean_n heretofore_o establish_v upon_o those_o two_o principle_n search_v after_o the_o way_n how_o plain_o and_o without_o equivocation_n to_o understand_v the_o state_n of_o the_o question_n which_o proper_o and_o particular_o cocern_v the_o devil_n this_o be_v not_o then_o the_o point_n in_o question_n to_o dispute_v of_o the_o meaning_n of_o those_o passage_n which_o mention_v the_o fall_n of_o man_n or_o speak_v of_o angel_n some_o of_o who_o appear_v to_o abraham_n and_o other_o wrestle_v with_o jacob_n or_o of_o the_o tentation_n of_o our_o lord_n christ_n in_o the_o desert_n nor_o of_o the_o sense_n of_o those_o that_o say_v david_n be_v tempt_v by_o satan_n and_o that_o job_n be_v torment_v by_o he_o and_o the_o like_a place_n but_o the_o chief_a point_n the_o scope_n of_o all_o this_o search_n be_v to_o know_v what_o to_o believe_v concern_v the_o devil_n upon_o this_o i_o bestow_v the_o five_o last_o chapter_n and_o in_o the_o three_o first_o of_o these_o five_o which_o be_v the_o 32th_o 33th_o and_o 34th_o i_o be_o not_o afraid_a of_o call_v reason_n to_o my_o assistance_n after_o have_v show_v that_o the_o scripture_n be_v silent_a upon_o this_o subject_n for_o i_o presume_v to_o have_v make_v appear_v in_o the_o 32th_o chapter_n that_o the_o apparition_n of_o evil_a spirit_n be_v contrary_a to_o true_a reason_n and_o that_o the_o holy_a scripture_n afford_v no_o proof_n of_o it_o afterward_o in_o the_o 33th_o chapter_n i_o show_v that_o the_o knowledge_n that_o the_o devil_n may_v have_v as_o well_o of_o thing_n natural_a as_o civil_a and_o above_o all_o of_o thing_n spiritual_a which_o concern_v our_o salvation_n be_v nothing_o of_o what_o be_v believe_v i_o rest_v as_o yet_o upon_o the_o same_o foundation_n of_o scripture_n and_o reason_n to_o prove_v the_o empire_n of_o the_o devil_n be_v but_o a_o chimaera_n and_o that_o he_o have_v neither_o such_o a_o power_n nor_o such_o a_o administration_n as_o be_v ordinary_o ascribe_v to_o he_o which_o be_v contain_v in_o the_o 34th_o chapter_n at_o last_o after_o have_v treat_v of_o all_o those_o thing_n with_o all_o possible_a exactness_n i_o come_v to_o the_o conclusion_n of_o my_o second_o book_n where_o i_o show_v the_o importance_n of_o this_o examination_n by_o reason_n of_o the_o great_a value_n the_o vulgar_a put_v upon_o the_o devil_n and_o his_o operation_n in_o the_o world_n my_o opinion_n be_v that_o these_o sort_n of_o discourse_n shake_v the_o ground_n of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o our_o salvation_n and_o cause_v a_o great_a damage_n to_o piety_n in_o divers_a occasion_n i_o demonstrate_v the_o first_o of_o these_o thing_n in_o the_o 35th_o chapter_n and_o the_o second_o in_o the_o 36th_o as_o to_o the_o doctrine_n i_o prove_v in_o this_o place_n what_o i_o have_v assert_v in_o the_o first_o chapter_n of_o my_o book_n viz._n that_o the_o common_a opinion_n concern_v the_o devil_n be_v opposite_a to_o the_o proof_n that_o jehova_n be_v god_n and_o that_o jesus_n be_v the_o messiah_n and_o that_o the_o book_n of_o the_o prophet_n and_o apostle_n be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n in_o what_o concern_v piety_n i_o show_v that_o the_o service_n of_o god_n be_v thereby_o great_o weaken_v that_o the_o filial_a fear_n be_v very_o much_o diminish_v by_o that_o they_o have_v of_o the_o devil_n that_o the_o esteem_n that_o the_o holy_a angel_n deserve_v be_v almost_o destroy_v that_o the_o glory_n and_o virtue_n of_o the_o miracle_n of_o
our_o saviour_n jesus_n be_v very_o much_o lessen_v that_o the_o vanity_n of_o man_n be_v maintain_v and_o increase_v and_o that_o the_o comfort_n of_o the_o humble_a be_v cut_v off_o or_o at_o least_o suffer_v a_o great_a diminution_n that_o be_v whatever_o be_v contain_v in_o my_o second_o book_n a_o abridgement_n of_o the_o three_o book_n after_o have_v thus_o simple_o treat_v of_o what_o concern_v spirit_n and_o particular_o the_o devil_n according_a to_o the_o knowledge_n that_o sound_a reason_n can_v furnish_v we_o with_o according_a to_o that_o which_o may_v be_v draw_v from_o the_o word_n of_o god_n where_o reason_n cease_v i_o pass_v still_o follow_v the_o order_n and_o division_n establish_v in_o my_o first_o book_n to_o those_o man_n who_o according_a to_o the_o common_a sentiment_n have_v communication_n with_o spirit_n especial_o with_o the_o devil_n the_o same_o order_n to_o which_o i_o have_v keep_v in_o my_o second_o book_n be_v also_o observe_v in_o this_o for_o in_o the_o eight_o first_o chapter_n i_o make_v a_o exact_a scrutiny_n of_o all_o which_o may_v contribute_v to_o clear_v the_o subject_n i_o treat_v of_o and_o afterward_o in_o the_o seven_o last_o i_o show_v what_o light_n the_o inquiry_n have_v afford_v i_o and_o how_o far_o one_o can_v rely_v upon_o what_o i_o have_v discover_v i_o propose_v at_o first_o the_o true_a state_n of_o the_o question_n show_v that_o the_o query_n be_v not_o whether_o magic_a be_v possible_a for_o i_o grant_v it_o but_o whether_o there_o be_v a_o magic_n which_o by_o the_o virtue_n of_o agreement_n make_v between_o man_n and_o the_o devil_n may_v discover_v hide_a thing_n predict_v those_o that_o be_v to_o come_v and_o produce_v effect_n above_o the_o force_n of_o nature_n this_o be_v discuss_v in_o the_o first_o chapter_n follow_v the_o distinction_n that_o i_o have_v already_o heretofore_o many_o time_n set_v down_o i_o make_v in_o the_o first_o and_o second_o chapter_n the_o search_n require_v and_o that_o first_o by_o the_o light_n of_o reason_n which_o i_o divide_v it_o into_o two_o part_n in_o the_o first_o i_o examine_v whether_o it_o be_v possible_a to_o conceive_v that_o man_n have_v any_o commerce_n with_o spirit_n that_o the_o one_o and_o the_o other_o may_v rely_v upon_o mutual_a help_n or_o that_o they_o may_v act_v one_o upon_o another_o in_o the_o second_o part_n i_o examine_v whether_o there_o be_v reason_n to_o believe_v that_o there_o may_v be_v express_a compact_n between_o they_o that_o they_o may_v mutual_o contract_v and_o reciprocal_o perform_v the_o condition_n of_o their_o covenant_n i_o express_o deny_v the_o first_o of_o these_o found_v upon_o the_o reason_n allege_v book_n 2._o chap._n 2._o and_o i_o unfold_v a_o little_a more_o precise_o in_o the_o 2_o chapter_n of_o this_o what_o be_v contain_v in_o the_o first_o which_o i_o defend_v against_o the_o argument_n of_o glanvil_n a_o english_a author_n i_o bestow_v the_o three_o chapter_n upon_o confute_v those_o compact_n of_o the_o magician_n with_o the_o devil_n as_o ridiculous_a and_o altogether_o incredible_a and_o i_o answer_v at_o the_o same_o time_n several_a objection_n and_o shift_n of_o glanvil_n convince_a he_o by_o his_o own_o reason_n that_o be_v sufficient_a for_o that_o purpose_n i_o pass_v afterward_o to_o the_o scripture_n as_o to_o a_o upper_a school_n from_o the_o four_o chapter_n to_o the_o seven_o i_o undertake_v it_o over_o from_o the_o begin_n to_o the_o end_n to_o find_v out_o with_o the_o utmost_a exactness_n what_o it_o discover_v to_o we_o upon_o this_o point_n and_o upon_o all_o its_o dependency_n either_o by_o its_o expression_n or_o by_o the_o example_n it_o afford_v we_o than_o i_o begin_v to_o establish_v what_o we_o may_v believe_v of_o it_o according_a to_o scripture_n as_o a_o introduction_n to_o this_o examination_n i_o relate_v all_o the_o name_n it_o give_v to_o that_o sort_n of_o people_n to_o their_o trade_n and_o art_n and_o i_o compare_v the_o difference_n to_o be_v find_v between_o the_o translation_n of_o our_o own_o interpreter_n as_o well_o as_o between_o the_o translation_n of_o other_o this_o examination_n be_v but_o general_a but_o afterward_o i_o come_v to_o particular_n whether_o the_o scripture_n speak_v of_o that_o sort_n of_o people_n of_o their_o trade_n and_o art_n so_o as_o it_o be_v ordinary_o suppose_v this_o i_o do_v from_o the_o five_o chapter_n to_o the_o 12_o but_o find_v it_o express_v not_o itself_o as_o they_o give_v out_o i_o examine_v what_o sort_n of_o people_n they_o can_v be_v and_o what_o the_o scripture_n real_o say_v of_o they_o from_o the_o 13_o chap._n to_o the_o 17_o i_o discuss_v the_o first_o of_o these_o as_o well_o by_o scripture_n as_o reason_n and_o proceed_v by_o degree_n search_v first_o whether_o these_o of_o who_o the_o scripture_n speak_v have_v a_o particular_a communication_n with_o the_o devil_n whether_o they_o make_v their_o prediction_n and_o enchantment_n by_o his_o undertake_n or_o by_o his_o power_n and_o at_o last_o whether_o they_o have_v between_o they_o covenant_n for_o that_o purpose_n the_o passage_n of_o scripture_n which_o i_o examine_v upon_o this_o subject_n be_v of_o three_o sort_n some_o contain_v history_n of_o that_o kind_n of_o people_n and_o of_o their_o witchcraft_n which_o i_o show_v in_o the_o 5_o 6_o and_o seven_o chapter_n viz._n in_o the_o 5_o all_o the_o enchantment_n of_o the_o egyptian_n in_o the_o 6_o those_o of_o bilsa_n those_o of_o the_o priest_n of_o the_o philistine_n and_o of_o the_o witch_n of_o endor_n and_o many_o other_o by_o who_o the_o idolatrous_a king_n of_o israel_n fall_v into_o great_a sin_n especial_o when_o they_o come_v to_o the_o court_n of_o babylon_n and_o in_o the_o seven_o chapter_n the_o enchantment_n of_o simon_n and_o elimas_n who_o be_v call_v enchantor_n those_o of_o the_o maid_n servant_n which_o be_v in_o the_o town_n of_o philippi_n who_o have_v a_o spirit_n of_o python_n and_o those_o of_o the_o seven_o brother_n exorcist_n afterward_o i_o come_v to_o the_o examination_n of_o the_o name_n of_o word_n of_o action_n and_o circumstance_n as_o well_o by_o themselves_o as_o compare_v the_o dutch_a translation_n of_o the_o scripture_n with_o those_o which_o have_v be_v make_v in_o divers_a language_n by_o different_a translator_n and_o by_o compare_v with_o the_o text_n the_o explication_n which_o be_v give_v by_o so_o many_o different_a interpreter_n all_o the_o passage_n where_o those_o thing_n be_v contain_v be_v examine_v very_o attentive_o give_v cause_n to_o conclude_v that_o the_o magician_n or_o enchanter_n have_v be_v very_o mischievous_a people_n who_o doctrine_n and_o moral_n be_v very_o much_o corrupt_v but_o they_o do_v not_o furnish_v any_o probable_a argument_n to_o assert_v that_o these_o people_n have_v a_o particular_a communication_n with_o the_o devil_n the_o second_o order_n of_o the_o passage_n of_o the_o holy_a writ_n upon_o this_o subject_n consist_v of_o those_o that_o contain_v the_o express_a law_n which_o condemn_v that_o sort_n of_o people_n and_o forbid_v they_o the_o exercise_n of_o their_o function_n which_o i_o examine_v in_o the_o 8_o and_o 9th_o chapter_n but_o i_o find_v no_o other_o reason_n for_o those_o prohibition_n and_o the_o punishment_n inflict_v upon_o they_o but_o their_o idolatry_n and_o cheat_n both_o of_o which_o be_v criminal_a and_o not_o become_v the_o people_n of_o god_n the_o three_o order_n consist_v in_o those_o reason_n and_o proverbial_a expression_n disperse_v through_o the_o whole_a scripture_n that_o have_v relation_n to_o those_o thing_n either_o to_o the_o person_n themselves_o or_o to_o their_o way_n i_o examine_v therefore_o whether_o nothing_o can_v be_v understand_v in_o those_o place_n whence_o some_o consequence_n may_v be_v draw_v to_o illustrate_v the_o subject_n in_o hand_n but_o have_v bestow_v the_o whole_a ten_o chapter_n upon_o it_o i_o find_v nothing_o more_o than_o before_o now_o as_o in_o the_o three_o chapter_n i_o have_v examine_v by_o the_o light_n of_o reason_n whether_o there_o be_v cause_n to_o believe_v the_o possibility_n of_o the_o communication_n of_o man_n with_o the_o devil_n by_o express_a covenant_n i_o do_v here_o the_o same_o by_o that_o of_o the_o holy_a writ_n for_o in_o the_o two_o follow_a chapter_n i_o run_v it_o over_o again_o and_o insist_v upon_o all_o the_o passage_n where_o the_o least_o mention_n be_v make_v of_o alliance_n or_o compact_n that_o be_v not_o make_v with_o god_n but_o against_o he_o sinful_o and_o with_o a_o evil_a design_n i_o find_v not_o so_o much_o as_o one_o that_o speak_v of_o those_o agreement_n make_v with_o the_o devil_n or_o any_o thing_n like_o it_o upon_o this_o i_o bestow_v the_o 11_o chapter_n in_o the_o 12_o i_o run_v over_o again_o the_o whole_a scripture_n from_o the_o begin_n to_o the_o end_n from_o the_o
it_o be_v possible_a that_o whatever_o the_o vulgar_a and_o the_o learned_a say_v of_o devil_n and_o whatever_o they_o ascribe_v to_o they_o be_v true_a i_o will_v not_o have_v spare_v so_o much_o time_n as_o to_o search_v into_o this_o matter_n have_v not_o i_o perceive_v that_o the_o opinion_n of_o most_o man_n and_o perhaps_o of_o all_o the_o world_n be_v only_o ground_v upon_o a_o unsure_a and_o waver_a foundation_n this_o have_v move_v i_o impartial_o to_o examine_v several_a thing_n which_o my_o call_v and_o common_a conversation_n offer_v to_o i_o this_o examination_n force_v my_o mind_n to_o reject_v many_o opinion_n which_o i_o have_v admit_v at_o first_o only_o because_o they_o be_v common_a though_o ground_v upon_o insufficient_a reason_n as_o i_o come_v by_o degree_n to_o be_v sensible_a of_o so_o that_o i_o find_v that_o at_o present_a i_o know_v much_o less_o than_o i_o former_o imagine_v to_o do_v especial_o as_o to_o the_o subject_n in_o hand_n this_o however_o i_o do_v not_o say_v with_o a_o design_n to_o censure_n or_o destroy_v what_o other_o have_v write_a i_o only_o intend_v to_o join_v my_o thought_n to_o they_o for_o a_o full_a instruction_n of_o such_o reader_n as_o love_v truth_n and_o be_v inquire_v after_o it_o sect._n 2._o i_o be_o not_o afraid_a to_o mistake_v if_o i_o say_v that_o whatever_o belong_v to_o this_o matter_n have_v not_o be_v exhaust_v those_o that_o have_v write_v upon_o it_o before_o have_v be_v somewhat_o retard_v by_o prejudices_fw-la that_o stick_v to_o their_o mind_n though_o they_o have_v free_v themselves_o of_o many_o other_o for_o i_o own_o they_o have_v proceed_v so_o far_o as_o to_o destroy_v most_o of_o the_o work_n of_o the_o devil_n at_o least_o so_o far_o as_o it_o be_v necessary_a to_o free_a man_n from_o superstition_n and_o frivolous_a fear_n but_o as_o for_o i_o i_o will_v if_o it_o be_v possible_a altogether_o overthrow_v they_o and_o not_o leave_v one_o stone_n upon_o another_o that_o shall_v not_o be_v demolish_v and_o therefore_o i_o will_v try_v whether_o i_o can_v bring_v my_o countryman_n to_o my_o opinion_n especial_o those_o of_o my_o profession_n desire_v they_o to_o read_v this_o treatise_n with_o as_o little_a prejudice_n as_o i_o have_v write_v and_o not_o to_o suffer_v themselves_o to_o be_v persuade_v by_o other_o reason_n but_o such_o as_o proceed_v from_o natural_a light_n from_o a_o clear_a interpretation_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n and_o from_o certain_a experiment_n i_o have_v right_a to_o require_v these_o condition_n from_o the_o reader_n since_o they_o can_v be_v reject_v by_o any_o rational_a person_n that_o they_o be_v a_o law_n to_o which_o i_o submit_v myself_o and_o that_o the_o great_a consequence_n of_o the_o matter_n require_v they_o sect._n 3_o i_o be_o confident_a and_o i_o hope_v that_o the_o reader_n will_v more_o plain_o perceive_v it_o hereafter_o that_o no_o point_n of_o the_o christian_a religion_n be_v more_o important_a than_o this_o and_o that_o no_o certain_a and_o sufficient_a proof_n may_v be_v have_v of_o all_o the_o other_o than_o by_o reject_v the_o opinion_n common_o receive_v among_o the_o vulgar_a concern_v the_o craft_n and_o power_n of_o the_o devil_n can_v it_o be_v imagine_v a_o small_a matter_n to_o know_v whether_o the_o devil_n have_v a_o kingdom_n upon_o earth_n and_o what_o be_v the_o limit_n that_o separate_v his_o dominion_n from_o that_o of_o god_n almighty_n or_o be_v 〈◊〉_d unserviceable_a to_o examine_v whether_o such_o a_o curse_a and_o detestable_a creature_n can_v do_v more_o wonderful_a thing_n than_o god_n ever_o do_v and_o consequent_o whether_o the_o trust_v we_o repose_v in_o god_n and_o the_o fear_n we_o have_v of_o the_o devil_n aught_o to_o be_v equal_a such_o thought_n ought_v never_o to_o enter_v into_o a_o christian_a heart_n yet_o they_o creep_v into_o it_o unaware_o at_o least_o i_o think_v so_o and_o can_v scarce_o doubt_v of_o it_o for_o the_o more_o i_o search_v into_o this_o matter_n the_o more_o it_o seem_v evident_a to_o i_o that_o whoever_o entire_o believe_v all_o that_o it_o use_v to_o be_v ascribe_v to_o the_o devil_n and_o his_o angel_n and_o all_o that_o be_v common_o say_v of_o they_o both_o by_o the_o learned_a and_o the_o vulgar_a save_v the_o bottom_n of_o the_o doctrine_n public_o receive_v and_o teach_v in_o our_o church_n he_o can_v have_v no_o convince_a proof_n that_o jesus_n be_v the_o messiah_n or_o that_o there_o be_v but_o one_o god_n and_o if_o in_o this_o write_n i_o do_v not_o make_v the_o reader_n very_o sensible_a of_o it_o i_o grant_v that_o i_o have_v compose_v it_o to_o no_o purpose_n sect._n 4._o but_o if_o i_o succeed_v it_o will_v at_o the_o same_o time_n plain_o appear_v that_o it_o be_v altogether_o necessary_a to_o publish_v this_o treatise_n because_o the_o vulgar_a be_v still_o confirm_v in_o their_o error_n by_o man_n of_o letter_n and_o of_o great_a name_n who_o be_v full_a themselves_o of_o those_o prejudices_fw-la make_v use_n of_o their_o tongue_n and_o learning_n to_o lead_v other_o into_o the_o same_o labyrinth_n to_o that_o end_n they_o wrest_v several_a expression_n and_o history_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n which_o be_v not_o accurate_o examine_v nor_o confer_v with_o other_o give_v a_o great_a probability_n to_o the_o common_a opinion_n concern_v the_o devil_n but_o if_o take_v in_o the_o ordinary_a sense_n they_o prove_v evident_o oppose_v to_o other_o clear_a expression_n concern_v the_o fundamental_a article_n of_o our_o faith_n it_o follow_v that_o such_o a_o sense_n can_v subsist_v without_o overthrow_v the_o ground_n of_o our_o salvation_n that_o i_o can_v hardly_o bear_v since_o a_o long_a time_n the_o nicety_n with_o which_o point_n of_o small_a consequence_n or_o at_o least_o of_o little_a certainty_n use_v to_o be_v treat_v of_o since_o one_o can_v discuss_v they_o without_o get_v into_o a_o suspicion_n of_o entertain_v erroneous_a opinion_n whilst_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n we_o be_v not_o yet_o agree_v upon_o matter_n of_o the_o utmost_a consequence_n or_o if_o we_o be_v agree_v upon_o they_o it_o it_o be_v without_o any_o foundation_n and_o therefore_o since_o none_o be_v ever_o find_v fault_n with_o for_o defend_v a_o article_n of_o faith_n or_o give_v out_o a_o new_a explication_n of_o it_o so_o i_o persuade_v myself_o that_o i_o do_v well_o by_o publish_v the_o illustration_n upon_o a_o matter_n on_o which_o the_o whole_a edifice_n of_o our_o salvation_n be_v ground_v in_o order_n that_o whoever_o will_v careful_o and_o impartial_o examine_v it_o may_v become_v wise_a and_o learnede_a sect._n 5._o as_o to_o what_o concern_v this_o book_n i_o will_v at_o first_o set_v down_o the_o subject_a matter_n of_o it_o before_o the_o reader_n the_o design_n be_v to_o examine_v to_o the_o bottom_n what_o the_o devil_n can_v do_v and_o what_o he_o real_o do_v that_o be_v how_o far_o his_o knowledge_n extend_v either_o in_o natural_a or_o supernatural_a thing_n either_o as_o to_o the_o presence_n as_o it_o be_v conceal_v from_o man_n or_o as_o to_o the_o future_a as_o it_o be_v contingent_a or_o possible_a and_o not_o necessary_a moreover_o what_o direction_n or_o power_n he_o have_v to_o operate_v in_o nature_n what_o communication_n he_o have_v with_o man_n with_o the_o human_a soul_n and_o with_o all_o sort_n of_o body_n that_o he_o shall_v transmute_v himself_o into_o they_o or_o put_v on_o their_o various_a form_n that_o he_o shall_v act_v upon_o the_o soul_n or_o upon_o the_o body_n that_o he_o shall_v direct_v thought_n word_n action_n and_o gesture_n what_o be_v his_o power_n over_o the_o beast_n and_o fruit_n of_o the_o earth_n over_o the_o air_n and_o wind_n what_o his_o help_n may_v contribute_v to_o the_o knowledge_n of_o man_n and_o his_o action_n herein_o consist_v augury_n or_o soothsay_v witchcraft_n the_o art_n of_o conjure_v up_o ghost_n and_o of_o divine_a dream_n all_o which_o thing_n be_v methodical_o and_o in_o the_o same_o order_n that_o be_v mention_v here_o treat_v of_o in_o this_o book_n sect._n 6._o but_o because_o the_o perfect_a knowledge_n of_o they_o depend_v upon_o another_o viz._n which_o be_v the_o nature_n of_o a_o spirit_n wherein_o it_o consist_v and_o how_o it_o be_v distinguish_v from_o that_o of_o the_o body_n for_o devil_n be_v undeniable_o spirit_n and_o man_n be_v compose_v of_o a_o body_n and_o a_o spirit_n so_o it_o will_v be_v necessary_a in_o this_o treatise_n to_o proceed_v far_o and_o to_o examine_v first_o the_o nature_n of_o spirit_n good_a and_o bad_a and_o then_o that_o of_o man._n beside_o god_n himself_o be_v a_o spirit_n but_o infinite_a and_o independent_a we_o ought_v not_o to_o pay_v ourselves_o with_o the_o conformity_n of_o the_o name_n but_o by_o reason_n of_o the_o manifest_a difference_n betwixt_o
more_o large_o explain_v in_o the_o forementioned_a place_n equity_n say_v he_o eternal_o attend_v he_o which_o be_v the_o avenger_n of_o those_o that_o forsake_v the_o law_n of_o god_n but_o happy_a be_v he_o who_o stick_v to_o it_o and_o follow_v it_o constant_o sect._n 4._o but_o how_o advantageous_o soever_o they_o may_v speak_v of_o the_o supreme_a deity_n it_o nevertheless_o appear_v that_o they_o do_v not_o ascribe_v to_o he_o independency_n nor_o the_o immediate_a direction_n of_o all_o thing_n since_o they_o divide_v the_o government_n of_o the_o world_n betwixt_o several_a god_n to_o each_o of_o who_o they_o assign_v his_o particular_a share_n it_o be_v very_o probable_a that_o the_o caldee_n and_o persian_n observe_v how_o human_a affair_n be_v often_o here_o below_o obnoxious_a to_o considerable_a change_n which_o proceed_v from_o heaven_n take_v occasion_n from_o thence_o to_o contrive_v two_o supreme_a deity_n proceed_v from_o that_o first_o be_v one_o of_o who_o they_o call_v oromasdes_n and_o give_v he_o the_o direction_n of_o heaven_n to_o the_o other_o name_v arimanius_n they_o ascribe_v that_o of_o the_o earth_n the_o roman_n afterward_o give_v they_o the_o greek_a name_n viz._n to_o the_o former_a that_o of_o jupiter_n and_o to_o the_o latter_a that_o of_o pluto_n who_o they_o at_o first_o look_v upon_o as_o the_o god_n of_o the_o earth_n and_o because_o all_o the_o wise_a hold_v for_o a_o certain_a truth_n that_o the_o heaven_n surpass_v the_o earth_n in_o perfection_n they_o place_v the_o supreme_a deity_n in_o heaven_n and_o the_o other_o god_n under_o it_o each_o according_a to_o his_o dignity_n and_o as_o they_o conceive_v that_o the_o sovereign_a god_n can_v never_o cease_v from_o be_v good_a so_o jupiter_n who_o have_v the_o empire_n of_o the_o heaven_n be_v in_o great_a credit_n among_o they_o but_o pluto_n the_o god_n of_o hell_n obtain_v but_o a_o ill_a name_n sect._n 5._o it_o be_v here_o methinks_v the_o proper_a place_n to_o distinguish_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o pagan_n into_o such_o as_o have_v either_o religion_n or_o nature_n for_o their_o object_n in_o the_o latter_a they_o inquire_v after_o the_o first_o and_o second_o cause_n of_o all_o thing_n of_o their_o motion_n and_o change_n without_o any_o reference_n to_o religion_n thus_o come_v upon_o the_o stage_n plato_n with_o his_o idea_n and_o aristotle_n with_o his_o intelligency_n plato_n call_v idea_n the_o principle_n that_o flow_v from_o the_o divine_a nature_n that_o subsist_v with_o he_o and_o by_o which_o all_o thing_n subsist_v each_o of_o they_o be_v as_o a_o engrave_v image_n of_o he_o from_o who_o they_o all_o proceed_v so_o that_o they_o all_o partake_v of_o the_o nature_n of_o their_o original_a and_o be_v such_o as_o the_o principal_a from_o whence_o they_o flow_v when_o i_o confer_v the_o sentiment_n of_o pythagoras_n contain_v in_o the_o word_n of_o socrates_n relate_v in_o the_o parmenis_fw-la with_o what_o plutarch_n say_v in_o his_o first_o book_n chap._n the_o 10_o of_o the_o opinion_n of_o philosopher_n and_o laertius_n in_o the_o life_n of_o the_o same_o pythagoras_n as_o also_o cicero_n in_o the_o first_o book_n of_o the_o tusculan_a question_n fifty_o eight_o wherein_o he_o explain_v the_o meaning_n of_o that_o philosopher_n it_o seem_v to_o i_o that_o nothing_o can_v be_v better_o nor_o more_o plain_o express_v concern_v this_o subject_n as_o for_o aristotle_n his_o opinion_n be_v that_o there_o be_v substance_n distinct_a and_o separate_a from_o matter_n who_o put_v the_o heaven_n into_o motion_n suppose_v heaven_n itself_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d a_o body_n in_o a_o continual_a and_o restless_a motion_n that_o the_o star_n be_v of_o a_o eternal_a nature_n and_o that_o wh●t_n move_v must_v be_v more_o durable_a and_o precede_v that_o which_o be_v move_v thence_o he_o infer_v that_o there_o be_v as_o many_o permanent_a and_o immovable_a substance_n this_o be_v what_o he_o teach_v in_o his_o metaphysic_n book_n the_o 14_o cap._n 18._o and_o what_o be_v call_v by_o his_o latin_a interpreter_n intelligency_n sect._n 6._o but_o when_o they_o proceed_v to_o religion_n there_o arise_v still_o among_o they_o more_o considerable_a difference_n which_o may_v be_v plain_o perceive_v in_o the_o book_n of_o plutarch_n entitle_v the_o opinion_n of_o philosopher_n and_o elsewhere_o in_o the_o same_o author_n as_o also_o in_o the_o book_n which_o apuleius_n a_o platonist_n more_o ancient_a than_o plutarch_n have_v write_v of_o the_o life_n of_o socrates_n the_o sum_n of_o what_o he_o say_v come_v to_o this_o that_o the_o deity_n be_v divide_v into_o four_o as_o into_o some_o degree_n that_o descend_v from_o high_a to_o low_a and_o that_o the_o three_o last_o degree_n be_v again_o subdivide_v into_o several_a other_o which_o they_o call_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d god_n demon_n and_o hero_n plato_n say_v apuleius_n have_v divide_v the_o whole_a nature_n into_o three_o with_o relation_n to_o spirit_n in_o particular_a believe_v that_o there_o be_v god_n superior_n middle_n and_o inferior_a of_o which_o three_o sort_n of_o god_n it_o be_v convenient_a to_o say_v something_o sect._n 7._o as_o to_o the_o superior_a or_o celestial_a god_n he_o say_v that_o their_o habitation_n be_v in_o heaven_n that_o they_o be_v immaterial_a and_o eternal_a of_o their_o own_o nature_n but_o that_o there_o be_v some_o which_o be_v in_o some_o sort_n visible_a in_o the_o star_n though_o other_o can_v be_v perceive_v by_o corporal_a eye_n but_o only_o by_o those_o of_o the_o understanding_n after_o he_o have_v distinguish_v those_o deity_n into_o sex_n like_a mankind_n that_o be_v into_o god_n and_o goddess_n he_o mention_n these_o 12_o viz._n jupiter_n apollo_n vulcan_n mars_n neptune_n mercury_n who_o be_v six_o god_n juno_n diana_n venus_n ceres_n vesta_n minerva_n who_o be_v as_o many_o goddess_n the_o dignity_n of_o these_o celestial_a god_n notwithstanding_o the_o liberty_n which_o the_o poet_n often_o take_v to_o contrive_v other_o account_n of_o they_o it_o be_v esteem_v too_o high_a that_o it_o shall_v allow_v they_o to_o descend_v and_o converse_v with_o man_n though_o they_o govern_v their_o affair_n each_o in_o his_o jurisdiction_n but_o the_o same_o plato_n believe_v the_o star_n be_v but_o improper_o call_v god_n and_o only_o in_o reference_n to_o the_o divine_a and_o immutable_a conduct_n that_o be_v observable_a in_o they_o the_o name_n of_o the_o fix_a star_n which_o be_v reckon_v among_o the_o visible_a god_n be_v contain_v in_o this_o verse_n arcturum_fw-la pluviasque_fw-la hyadas_n geminosque_fw-la triones_fw-la but_o leave_v those_o god_n to_o plato_n of_o who_o make_v they_o be_v the_o star_n which_o be_v call_v by_o ignorance_n planet_n or_o err_a star_n be_v also_o account_v among_o the_o god_n the_o sun_n be_v call_v apollo_n and_o the_o moon_n diana_n to_o which_o these_o five_o be_v join_v saturn_n jupiter_n mars_n venus_n call_v also_o the_o morning_n and_o evening_n star_n and_o mercury_n though_o they_o appear_v but_o ordinary_a star_n another_o source_n of_o the_o pagan_a error_n in_o their_o divinity_n be_v the_o conformity_n betwixt_o the_o name_n of_o some_o star_n and_o those_o of_o their_o invisible_a god_n they_o believe_v that_o there_o be_v deity_n in_o the_o star_n who_o act_v by_o they_o or_o that_o the_o star_n be_v god_n who_o have_v life_n in_o themselves_o communicate_v it_o to_o other_o creature_n as_o it_o be_v believe_v by_o alomen_n who_o opinion_n be_v relate_v in_o clemens_n alexandrinus_n sect._n 8._o we_o may_v still_o perceive_v some_o remain_n of_o that_o opinion_n in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o day_n of_o the_o week_n in_o the_o english_a french_a and_o dutch_a tongue_n as_o well_o as_o in_o latin_a for_o they_o still_o name_n by_o one_o of_o the_o seven_o planet_n that_o day_n on_o which_o they_o believe_v they_o to_o have_v a_o particular_a influence_n as_o lunae_n die_v lundi_n monday_n maanday_n martis_n die_v mardi_n duigsday_n a_o abbreviation_n of_o dyssenday_n which_o be_v still_o in_o use_n in_o zealand_n and_o brabant_n mercury_n die_v mecred_fw-mi wednesday_n woonsdag_n from_o wodensday_n the_o day_n of_o woden_n the_o name_n of_o mercury_n among_o the_o ancient_a german_n and_o dutch_a because_o he_o be_v the_o god_n of_o merchant_n and_o the_o messenger_n of_o the_o god_n jovis_n die_v jeudi_fw-la thursday_n donderdag_n because_o jupiter_n be_v esteem_v the_o god_n of_o thunder_n veneris_fw-la dies_fw-la vandredi_n friday_n vrydag_n from_o freda_n the_o ancient_a name_n of_o venus_n in_o the_o dutch_a and_o saxon_a tongue_n whence_o it_o come_v that_o the_o frison_n call_v that_o day_n free_v and_o whence_o undoubted_o come_v the_o dutch_a word_n vryen_n to_o court_v a_o woman_n saturni_n die_v samedi_fw-la saturday_n saterdag_n solis_fw-la dies_fw-la sunday_n sondag_n but_o in_o the_o
romulus_n who_o frightful_o imagine_v to_o see_v the_o ghost_n of_o his_o brother_n remus_n after_o he_o have_v kill_v he_o if_o those_o narration_n be_v true_a such_o spirit_n may_v be_v call_v terrify_v spirit_n ovid_n in_o the_o five_o book_n of_o the_o fasti_fw-la plain_o say_v what_o must_v be_v understand_v by_o that_o name_n mox_fw-la etiam_fw-la lemures_n animas_fw-la dixere_fw-la silentum_fw-la the_o soul_n of_o the_o dead_a have_v the_o name_n of_o lemures_n sect._n 16._o the_o lares_fw-la or_o perhaps_o the_o genive_n be_v call_v by_o macrobius_n in_o his_o three_o book_n of_o the_o saturnalia_fw-la chap._n 4._o penates_fw-la that_o be_v bear_v together_o quasi_fw-la penes_fw-la nos_fw-la natos_fw-la for_o as_o that_o author_n pursue_v it_o be_v by_o they_o that_o we_o breath_n by_o they_o that_o we_o have_v our_o body_n and_o by_o they_o that_o our_o soul_n subsist_v but_o it_o be_v better_a to_o call_v they_o god_n and_o governor_n of_o country_n to_o distinguish_v they_o from_o the_o lares_fw-la who_o be_v particular_a to_o each_o family_n as_o they_o be_v both_o distinguish_v from_o the_o genius_n and_o look_v upon_o as_o take_v care_n of_o the_o exterior_a of_o man_n as_o the_o genius_n do_v of_o the_o interior_a however_o it_o must_v be_v confess_v that_o there_o be_v but_o confusion_n and_o darkness_n to_o be_v meet_v with_o in_o the_o book_n of_o the_o heathen_n concern_v those_o name_n and_o their_o pretend_a signification_n they_o have_v not_o well_o know_v themselves_o what_o they_o worship_v as_o god_n or_o as_o spirit_n neither_o need_v we_o take_v much_o trouble_n in_o unravel_v what_o they_o themselves_o know_v not_o since_o the_o memory_n both_o of_o they_o and_o of_o their_o daemon_n be_v long_o since_o extinguish_v upon_o earth_n this_o be_v the_o lot_n of_o the_o heathen_n and_o of_o their_o god_n jeremiah_n cap._n 10._o sect._n 17._o whether_o this_o last_o sort_n of_o god_n or_o spirit_n be_v call_v genii_n manes_n penates_fw-la or_o lemures_n it_o plain_o appear_v that_o they_o believe_v the_o immortality_n of_o the_o soul_n which_o opinion_n be_v confound_v with_o that_o of_o daemon_n give_v occasion_n to_o contrive_v those_o sort_n of_o spirit_n plato_n in_o his_o book_n of_o the_o soul_n entitle_v phaedo_fw-la induce_v socrates_n speak_v near_o his_o death_n in_o these_o word_n above_o all_o the_o soul_n must_v be_v immortal_a and_o unperishable_a and_o consequent_o it_o must_v go_v to_o live_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d in_o invisible_a place_n or_o as_o other_o pretend_v to_o infer_v from_o the_o etymology_n of_o the_o word_n in_o agreeable_a place_n marcilius_n ficinus_fw-la have_v translate_v it_o in_o latin_a apud_fw-la manes_fw-la by_o the_o survive_a spirit_n as_o i_o have_v name_v they_o above_o but_o a_o little_a after_o he_o translate_v apud_fw-la inferos_fw-la in_o the_o subterraneous_a place_n which_o proceed_v from_o that_o they_o place_v the_o soul_n of_o the_o decease_a under_o the_o earth_n cicero_n in_o the_o first_o book_n of_o the_o tusculan_a question_n sect._n 26._o show_n both_o in_o these_o word_n we_o believe_v that_o the_o soul_n survive_v because_o all_o our_o reason_n lead_v we_o to_o that_o opinion_n reason_n ought_v also_o to_o teach_v we_o where_o they_o be_v whence_o ignorance_n have_v take_v occasion_n to_o invent_v subterraneous_a place_n because_o body_n be_v put_v into_o the_o earth_n and_o cover_v with_o earth_n humo_fw-la whence_o come_v humari_fw-la to_o be_v bury_v thereof_o it_o have_v be_v believe_v that_o the_o dead_a still_o live_v under_o the_o earth_n now_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d be_v the_o same_o word_n which_o the_o interpreter_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n sometime_o translate_v by_o that_o of_o hell_n sometime_o by_o that_o of_o grave_a none_o of_o which_o agree_v with_o the_o sense_n of_o socrates_n or_o that_o of_o plato_n for_o at_o the_o end_n of_o the_o forementioned_a book_n socrates_n deride_v crito_n who_o ask_v he_o how_o he_o will_v be_v bury_v he_o believe_v say_v he_o that_o i_o be_o that_o dead_a body_n which_o he_o shall_v see_v anon_o signify_v that_o they_o may_v indeed_o bury_v his_o dead_a body_n but_o as_o to_o he_o that_o be_v his_o soul_n he_o shall_v pass_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d to_o the_o assure_a felicity_n of_o the_o bless_a which_o very_o much_o differ_v from_o the_o grave_a or_o hell_n and_o therefore_o it_o be_v certain_a that_o socrates_n who_o speak_v so_o believe_v the_o soul_n to_o be_v immortal_a and_o that_o plato_n who_o write_v his_o word_n be_v of_o the_o same_o persuasion_n sect._n 18._o but_o there_o be_v other_o who_o though_o they_o be_v of_o the_o same_o opinion_n yet_o have_v not_o acquire_v so_o much_o insight_n into_o the_o state_n of_o soul_n separate_v from_o their_o body_n invent_v transmigration_n and_o purification_n the_o druid_n so_o famous_a among_o the_o ancient_a gaul_n hold_v together_o the_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d or_o transmigration_n of_o soul_n with_o their_o immortality_n for_o they_o unanimous_o teach_v according_a to_o the_o testimony_n of_o caesar_n book_n 8._o chap._n 18._o non_fw-la interire_fw-la animas_fw-la sed_fw-la ab_fw-la aliis_fw-la post_fw-la mortem_fw-la transire_fw-la ad_fw-la alios_fw-la soul_n die_v not_o but_o that_o after_o death_n they_o pass_v from_o one_o to_o another_o the_o ancient_a egyptian_n be_v of_o the_o same_o opinion_n and_o herodotus_n write_v that_o they_o be_v the_o first_o who_o teach_v the_o immortality_n of_o the_o soul_n for_o say_v he_o their_o sentiment_n be_v that_o the_o soul_n be_v deprive_v of_o the_o body_n pass_v into_o another_o body_n which_o be_v then_o bear_v and_o after_o she_o have_v thus_o walk_v through_o all_o sort_n of_o body_n upon_o earth_n in_o the_o sea_n and_o in_o the_o air_n she_o at_o last_o return_n into_o a_o human_a body_n thence_o it_o be_v that_o pythagoras_n have_v his_o doctrine_n which_o he_o bring_v over_o into_o greece_n whence_o it_o pass_v into_o italy_n lactantius_n explain_v the_o opinion_n of_o that_o philisopher_n in_o his_o seven_o book_n de_fw-fr proemio_fw-la chap._n 8._o in_o these_o word_n pythagoras_n as_o foolish_o assert_v that_o the_o soul_n pass_v into_o other_o body_n from_o the_o body_n of_o man_n into_o those_o of_o beast_n and_o from_o those_o of_o beast_n into_o those_o of_o man_n again_o and_o that_o his_o own_o have_v former_o be_v that_o of_o euphorbius_fw-la plato_n and_o several_a other_o have_v partly_o follow_v he_o which_o we_o shall_v be_v oblige_v frequent_o to_o mention_v hereafter_o sect._n 19_o but_o socrates_n as_o plato_n relate_v in_o the_o forementioned_a treatise_n which_o contain_v his_o last_o word_n lead_v the_o soul_n to_o some_o place_n where_o they_o shall_v be_v bless_v or_o torment_v without_o body_n he_o send_v those_o who_o shall_v have_v do_v good_a into_o the_o upper_a and_o aetherial_a region_n where_o he_o believe_v the_o most_o pure_a part_n of_o this_o orb_n to_o be_v and_o where_o the_o soul_n shall_v eternal_o live_v without_o the_o body_n in_o a_o unexpressible_a felicity_n whereas_o he_o condemn_v those_o of_o the_o wicked_a to_o the_o tartarus_n which_o be_v a_o deep_a and_o frightful_a abyss_n where_o they_o shall_v be_v punish_v according_a to_o their_o desert_n from_o that_o gulf_n of_o torment_n he_o draw_v four_o river_n to_o which_o he_o give_v as_o many_o name_n very_o fit_a to_o express_v his_o notion_n viz._n oceanus_n a_o precipitate_a torrent_n acheron_n a_o torrent_n of_o torment_n pyriphlegeton_n conflagration_n and_o cocytus_n bemoan_v here_o sinner_n who_o have_v not_o be_v altogether_o incorrigible_a be_v to_o be_v purge_v with_o many_o pain_n and_o vexation_n more_o or_o less_o long_o or_o short_a according_a to_o their_o desert_n there_o you_o have_v the_o original_n of_o purgatory_n or_o of_o that_o purge_a fire_n still_o believe_v by_o the_o roman_a church_n however_o socrates_n give_v out_o that_o narration_n but_o for_o a_o chimaera_n for_o before_o he_o begin_v it_o he_o call_v it_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d a_o pretty_a fable_n worth_a hear_n and_o at_o the_o end_n he_o say_v but_o no_o man_n of_o sense_n ought_v to_o maintain_v that_o opinion_n so_o as_o i_o have_v relate_v though_o i_o esteem_v it_o rational_a and_o just_a to_o show_v that_o it_o go_v very_o near_o so_o in_o reference_n to_o our_o soul_n and_o their_o habitation_n since_o it_o plain_o appear_v that_o the_o soul_n be_v immortal_a these_o word_n of_o a_o die_a man_n who_o exhort_v those_o that_o be_v present_a to_o be_v at_o all_o time_n ready_a for_o death_n persuade_v i_o more_o and_o more_o of_o what_o i_o have_v already_o say_v that_o the_o heathen_n express_v themselves_o various_o upon_o these_o matter_n and_o that_o they_o speak_v otherwise_o when_o they_o consider_v they_o in_o reference_n to_o religion_n than_o when_o they_o conceive_v they_o in_o relation_n
upon_o this_o most_o of_o the_o brahmin_n that_o be_v not_o engage_v in_o any_o of_o these_o two_o sect_n schaaruakka_n and_o pasenda_n admit_v the_o immortality_n of_o human_a soul_n and_o say_v that_o there_o be_v some_o who_o be_v separate_v from_o the_o body_n become_v devil_n because_o of_o their_o sin_n and_o that_o the_o time_n of_o their_o first_o punishment_n be_v finish_v they_o must_v wander_v in_o the_o air_n and_o there_o induce_v a_o intolerable_a hunger_n it_o be_v impossible_a for_o they_o to_o draw_v so_o much_o as_o the_o leaf_n of_o a_o herb_n or_o to_o supply_v their_o want_n with_o any_o other_o thing_n beside_o what_o man_n bestow_v upon_o they_o in_o charity_n i_o have_v mention_v that_o opinion_n speak_v of_o the_o ratsiasias_n sect._n 21._o in_o a_o word_n when_o we_o gather_v all_o the_o observation_n make_v in_o this_o chapter_n and_o before_o it_o to_o discover_v the_o opinion_n of_o the_o heathen_n we_o find_v that_o though_o all_o their_o superstition_n be_v ground_v upon_o very_o different_a cause_n yet_o they_o all_o tend_v in_o the_o main_a to_o the_o same_o scope_n that_o be_v to_o worship_v one_o sole_a object_n as_o the_o supreme_a deity_n and_o yet_o to_o associate_v spirit_n to_o he_o i_o can_v better_o express_v that_o thought_n than_o by_o the_o very_a word_n of_o carolinus_n which_o be_v as_o a_o re-capitulation_a of_o what_o have_v hitherto_o be_v say_v some_o esteem_n say_v he_o that_o the_o soul_n be_v mortal_a other_o esteem_v they_o immortal_a some_o establish_v rhe_n transmigration_n of_o soul_n other_o be_v not_o of_o that_o opinion_n and_o how_o much_o differ_v those_o that_o assert_v the_o metempsychosis_n between_o themselves_o some_o as_o those_o of_o java_n believe_v that_o the_o soul_n go_v into_o the_o first_o body_n she_o meet_v with_o other_o believe_v that_o she_o be_v send_v into_o such_o or_o such_o body_n according_a as_o she_o have_v merit_v by_o the_o good_a or_o evil_n she_o have_v do_v which_o be_v the_o opinion_n of_o the_o banjane_n some_o affirm_v that_o the_o soul_n change_v their_o abode_n but_o once_o other_o three_o time_n and_o other_o teach_v a_o vast_a number_n of_o transmigration_n other_o make_v they_o pass_v only_o into_o man_n who_o must_v also_o be_v stranger_n other_o again_o send_v they_o into_o man_n and_o beast_n but_o other_o at_o last_o make_v they_o pass_v only_o in_o the_o female_n of_o man_n and_o beast_n which_o be_v the_o imagination_n of_o the_o thearavach_n other_o have_v yet_o quite_o different_a opinion_n in_o a_o word_n it_o may_v be_v right_o say_v upon_o this_o subject_n many_o man_n many_o mind_n for_o there_o be_v almost_o as_o many_o opinion_n as_o person_n chap_n viii_o that_o the_o witchcraft_n practise_v among_o the_o people_n proceed_v from_o the_o same_o source_n sect._n 8._o as_o the_o name_n of_o withcraft_n be_v give_v to_o whatever_o be_v suppose_v to_o be_v do_v by_o the_o help_n of_o the_o devil_n i_o can_v but_o judge_v that_o many_o person_n be_v call_v sorcerer_n and_o witch_n who_o perhaps_o be_v not_o so_o and_o that_o this_o must_v be_v ascribe_v to_o the_o same_o prejudice_n which_o i_o have_v mention_v before_o speak_v of_o the_o worship_n of_o demon_n and_o therefore_o i_o intend_v to_o examine_v hereafter_o what_o these_o people_n real_o be_v it_o be_v sufficient_a to_o advertise_v here_o before_o hand_n that_o all_o the_o heathen_n must_v not_o be_v take_v for_o magician_n sorcerer_n and_o enchanter_n because_o many_o writer_n have_v call_v they_o by_o such_o name_n give_v they_o indifferent_o in_o their_o write_n to_o all_o the_o he_o and_o she_o priest_n and_o to_o all_o those_o who_o discharge_v any_o office_n ministry_n or_o employment_n in_o their_o religious_a worship_n and_o in_o their_o sacrifice_n but_o i_o design_v to_o insert_v in_o this_o present_a chapter_n whatever_o be_v know_v to_o we_o of_o their_o practice_n or_o of_o their_o communication_n with_o any_o of_o the_o inferior_a god_n or_o spirit_n good_a or_o bad_a sect._n 2._o the_o veneration_n which_o that_o people_n have_v for_o the_o sun_n moon_n and_o star_n be_v sufficient_a to_o establish_v the_o choice_n of_o day_n among_o they_o whence_o proceed_v wha●_n pete●_n vaudenbrook_n have_v observe_v speak_v of_o the_o benjane_n of_o narsinga_n that_o as_o to_o happy_a and_o unhappy_a ●ours_n they_o judge_v of_o they_o by_o the_o course_n of_o the_o star_n w●●c●●he●_n o●s●●●e_v with_o great_a nicety_n trigaltius_fw-la in_o 〈…〉_o chap._n ●9_n say_v that_o there_o be_v no_o su●_n 〈…〉_o in_o china_n as_o that_o of_o observe_v the_o feast_n and_o work_a day_n and_o that_o they_o rule_v the_o whole_a conduct_n of_o their_o life_n upon_o the_o disposition_n of_o time_n to_o that_o end_n there_o be_v print_v every_o year_n two_o sort_n of_o almanac_n make_v in_o the_o emperor_n name_n by_o his_o own_o astrologer_n which_o contribute_v to_o set_v off_o this_o delusion_n for_o a_o truth_n there_o be_v mark_v every_o day_n what_o be_v good_a to_o be_v do_v or_o not_o to_o be_v do_v and_o to_o what_o hour_n must_v be_v defer_v what_o offer_v itself_o in_o the_o interval_n of_o the_o fortunate_a or_o unlucky_a moment_n sect._n 2._o carolinus_n have_v methinks_v make_v a_o good_a abridgement_n of_o what_o follow_v in_o trigaltius_fw-la which_o therefore_o i_o intend_v to_o make_v use_n of_o there_o be_v other_o book_n say_v he_o beside_o those_o that_o more_o particular_o treat_v of_o this_o matter_n and_o even_o there_o be_v a_o sort_n of_o teacher_n which_o only_o subsist_v from_o what_o they_o get_v in_o prescribe_v happy_a day_n and_o hour_n to_o the_o querist_n tho'_o they_o have_v but_o a_o small_a reward_n for_o it_o they_o be_v so_o much_o bewitch_v with_o those_o prediction_n that_o they_o often_o defer_v a_o importunate_a affair_n or_o a_o long_a and_o dangerous_a journey_n till_o they_o have_v find_v out_o a_o day_n or_o hour_n of_o good_a omen_n and_o tho'_o it_o sometime_o happen_v that_o at_o that_o day_n or_o hour_n there_o fall_v a_o great_a rain_n or_o a_o contrary_a wind_n blow_v yet_o for_o all_o that_o they_o begin_v the_o undertake_n or_o journey_n in_o their_o perfixed_a time_n shall_v they_o only_o proceed_v 4_o step_n or_o dig_v out_o but_o a_o basket_n full_a of_o earth_n from_o the_o place_n where_o they_o intend_v to_o lay_v the_o foundation_n of_o a_o house_n that_o be_v also_o the_o employment_n of_o those_o that_o be_v ancient_o call_v astrologer_n and_o mathematician_n of_o who_o we_o have_v speak_v before_o sect._n 4._o they_o be_v no_o less_o superstitious_o curious_a in_o observe_v the_o time_n of_o the_o birth_n to_o foretell_v the_o condition_n of_o the_o whole_a course_n of_o one_o life_n those_o calculator_n of_o one_o nativity_n be_v the_o same_o with_o the_o ancient_n genethliaci_n before_o mention_v chap._n 3._o sect._n 4._o there_o be_v many_o other_o diviner_n who_o boast_v of_o foretel_v future_a thing_n by_o the_o observation_n of_o the_o star_n by_o the_o inspection_n of_o the_o face_n by_o the_o dream_n by_o the_o posture_n of_o the_o enquir_a by_o his_o manner_n of_o sit_v or_o stand_v and_o this_o sort_n of_o man_n be_v in_o great_a esteem_n among_o the_o vulgar_a sect_n 5._o rogerius_n give_v a_o large_a account_n of_o what_o have_v be_v say_v concern_v the_o choice_n of_o day_n among_o the_o chinese_n which_o be_v likewise_o practise_v among_o other_o nation_n as_o especial_o the_o inhabitant_n of_o the_o coast_n of_o coromandel_n where_o they_o use_v almanac_n like_o those_o of_o china_n and_o call_v they_o paniangam_n that_o author_n say_v that_o they_o be_v two_o sort_n one_o that_o show_v what_o must_v be_v do_v and_o the_o other_o what_o must_v be_v lay_v aside_o at_o every_o hour_n of_o the_o day_n of_o the_o week_n and_o what_o shall_v succeed_v or_o not_o for_o a_o specimen_fw-la of_o it_o he_o relate_v the_o prediction_n of_o sunday_n from_o hour_n to_o hour_n they_o reckon_v in_o that_o country_n 30_o hour_n betwixt_o the_o rise_n and_o set_v of_o the_o sun_n 1._o good_a for_o all_o affair_n of_o council_n and_o reason_v 2._o undertaking_a shall_v prosper_v 3._o shall_v not_o succeed_v 4._o who_o mean_v to_o get_v a_o advantage_n shall_v not_o get_v it_o but_o his_o enemy_n 5._o good_a for_o trading_n profitable_o 6._o good_a for_o rejoice_v and_o undertake_v whatever_o concern_v merriment_n and_o science_n 7._o the_o court_v of_o woman_n shall_v succeed_v at_o a_o pleasure_n 8._o trade_n without_o gain_n 9_o as_o the_o 6_o hour_n 10._o no_o project_n happy_a 11._o physics_n and_o thing_n take_v for_o pleasure_n will_v not_o prosper_v 12._o who_o aspire_v after_o victory_n shall_v obtain_v it_o 13._o good_a for_o buy_v cow_n and_o other_o beast_n 14._o good_a to_o take_v a_o servant_n 15._o bad_a to_o enter_v into_o a_o
new_a house_n or_o to_o go_v a_o visit_n 16._o good_a to_o lay_v the_o foundation_n of_o house_n village_n or_o to_n 17._o unhappy_a journey_n 18._o good_a to_o pay_v visit_n to_o the_o great_a 19_o good_a for_o erect_v statue_n in_o the_o pagodas_n to_o the_o honour_n of_o the_o go_n 20._o unhappy_a for_o all_o sort_n of_o undertake_v 21._o nothing_o to_o be_v get_v 22._o who_o give_v battle_n shall_v loose_v the_o day_n 23._o good_a to_o make_v friend_n 24._o good_a for_o fight_v 25._o good_a for_o keep_v council_n 26._o unprofitable_a trade_n 27._o who_o lie_v with_o a_o woman_n shall_v get_v she_o with_o child_n 28._o every_o undertake_n shall_v succeed_v 29._o shall_v not_o succeed_v 30._o good_a for_o plant_v the_o night_n be_v likewise_o distribute_v into_o several_a hour_n as_o also_o the_o other_o day_n and_o night_n of_o the_o week_n sect._n 6._o that_o superstition_n have_v proceed_v so_o far_o as_o to_o have_v stain_v a_o art_n very_o commendable_a in_o itself_o and_o one_o of_o the_o liberal_a arts._n for_o according_a to_o the_o relation_n of_o daviti_n extract_v from_o osorius_n the_o malabar_n who_o use_v to_o begin_v their_o year_n with_o the_o month_n of_o september_n have_v recourse_n to_o superstitious_a observation_n in_o order_n to_o mark_v the_o first_o day_n and_o hour_n of_o it_o that_o day_n all_o those_o that_o be_v above_o the_o age_n of_o 15_o cover_v their_o eye_n and_o face_n that_o they_o may_v see_v nothing_o and_o cause_n themselves_o to_o be_v bring_v into_o the_o pagode_n of_o their_o idol_n where_o they_o present_o uncover_v their_o face_n and_o quick_o cast_v their_o eye_n upon_o the_o first_o object_n before_o they_o if_o it_o happen_v to_o be_v the_o statute_n of_o some_o idol_n for_o which_o they_o have_v a_o particular_a veneration_n they_o fancy_v they_o shall_v pass_v the_o year_n most_o happy_o sect_n 7._o those_o that_o observe_v the_o cry_n of_o bird_n have_v a_o very_a great_a relation_n with_o the_o malabar_n and_o agree_v with_o they_o almost_o in_o the_o same_o thing_n for_o carolinus_n say_v after_o rogerin_n that_o they_o observe_v what_o sort_n of_o bird_n fly_v near_o they_o and_o to_o what_o part_n whence_o they_o draw_v a_o favourable_a or_o sinister_a augury_n they_o say_v that_o when_o a_o ash-coloured_n crow_n whereof_o there_o be_v great_a number_n upon_o the_o coast_n come_v to_o touch_v some_o body_n in_o fly_v it_o forebode_v very_o ill_o viz._n that_o he_o that_o have_v be_v touch_v or_o some_o of_o his_o friend_n shall_v die_v within_o 6_o week_n linschoten_n give_v very_o near_o the_o same_o account_n of_o the_o decanins_n and_o the_o inhabitant_n of_o gurusatte_n say_v that_o if_o the_o first_o object_n they_o see_v in_o the_o morning_n be_v a_o ash-coloured_n crow_n they_o will_v not_o go_v out_o of_o their_o house_n for_o any_o thing_n sect._n 8._o daviti_n say_v after_o mendoze_n that_o the_o heathen_n of_o the_o island_n call_v by_o the_o spaniard_n philippines_n have_v some_o she_o diviner_n name_v holaoi_n who_o they_o honour_v as_o priest_n who_o converse_v daily_o with_o the_o demon_n at_o least_o in_o his_o opinion_n and_o that_o they_o public_o before_o all_o the_o people_n make_v strange_a posture_n and_o a_o horrid_a noise_n during_o which_o the_o spirit_n of_o divination_n seize_v upon_o they_o and_o give_v by_o they_o answer_v to_o whatever_o be_v ask_v the_o same_o author_n add_v that_o they_o have_v a_o particular_a sort_n of_o divination_n in_o which_o if_o they_o meet_v a_o cayman_n in_o their_o way_n they_o return_v home_o whence_o appear_v that_o they_o esteem_v that_o meeting_n unfortunate_a sect._n 9_o beside_o that_o all_o sort_n of_o presage_n be_v in_o credit_n among_o those_o nation_n who_o draw_v they_o from_o whatever_o offer_v itself_o to_o they_o if_o any_o body_n sneeze_v before_o they_o when_o they_o go_v out_o of_o their_o house_n they_o present_o step_v in_o again_o for_o they_o esteem_v it_o a_o very_a bad_a omen_n peter_n vandenbroek_n affirm_v the_o same_o of_o the_o inhabitant_n of_o narsinga_n and_o add_v that_o when_o they_o go_v out_o in_o the_o morning_n if_o they_o meet_v with_o some_o bad_a augury_n they_o return_v back_o or_o stay_v till_o a_o more_o favourable_a offer_v itself_o we_o read_v in_o carolinus_n which_o be_v according_a to_o they_o good_a or_o bad_a sign_n which_o he_o have_v transcribe_v out_o of_o tuisk_n and_o vandenbroek_v here_o they_o be_v beside_o sneeze_v and_o flight_n of_o bird_n there_o be_v several_a other_o ill_a pregage_n as_o a_o empty_a cart_n a_o dog_n who_o have_v nothing_o to_o eat_v a_o buffle_n a_o ass_n a_o guilded-he-goat_n a_o ape_n a_o loosened_a hart_n a_o goldsmith_n a_o carpenter_n a_o barber_n a_o tailor_n a_o cotton-merchant_n a_o farrier_n a_o weaver_n a_o she-widow_n a_o dead_a body_n all_o people_n come_v from_o a_o burying_n before_o they_o be_v wash_v and_o have_v change_v their_o dress_n it_o be_v also_o a_o ill_a augury_n to_o meet_v with_o one_o that_o carry_v butter_n milk_n or_o brown_a sugar_n or_o sour_a thing_n as_o apple_n and_o lemon_n or_o one_o that_o carry_v fire_n and_o any_o thing_n use_v in_o war._n but_o it_o be_v a_o good_a omen_n to_o meet_v with_o a_o elephant_n a_o camel_n either_o load_v or_o unloaden_v a_o horse_n better_o unloaden_v than_o load_v a_o cow_n a_o ox_n a_o buff_n load_v with_o water_n for_o unloaden_v it_o forebode_v nothing_o but_o ill_a a_o he-gcat_a a_o dog_n eat_v a_o cat_n on_o the_o right_a hand_n likewise_o to_o meet_v one_o carry_v meat_n curd_n or_o white-sugar_n a_o cock_n a_o unicorn_n run_v straight_o out_o in_o the_o way_n and_o a_o hundred_o thing_n of_o that_o nature_n be_v esteem_v so_o fortunate_a by_o they_o that_o they_o bold_o pursue_v their_o way_n with_o hope_n of_o a_o good_a fortune_n tereira_n add_v that_o they_o believe_v it_o a_o very_a ill_a thing_n and_o even_o a_o sin_n to_o eat_v before_o sunset_n sect_n 10._o this_o be_v what_o i_o emend_v to_o relate_v as_o to_o divination_n upon_o which_o point_n and_o especial_o upon_o witchcraft_n i_o be_o surprise_v to_o find_v so_o little_a in_o the_o writing_n of_o so_o many_o author_n who_o i_o have_v consult_v with_o great_a exactness_n neither_o do_v i_o remember_v to_o have_v learn_v any_o thing_n more_o particular_a in_o the_o conversation_n i_o have_v have_v with_o gentleman_n that_o have_v make_v long_a journey_n into_o the_o eastern_a country_n but_o i_o wonder_v most_o of_o all_o that_o baldaeus_n who_o chief_a scope_n in_o his_o writing_n be_v to_o treat_v of_o the_o idolatry_n of_o the_o eastern_a country_n make_v almost_o no_o mention_n of_o it_o the_o only_a thing_n i_o find_v in_o he_o concern_v the_o conjuration_n of_o serpent_n the_o inhabitant_n say_v he_o of_o the_o coast_n of_o coromandel_n and_o some_o of_o the_o cingalese_n and_o malabar_n know_v how_o to_o enchant_v serpent_n so_o that_o by_o their_o song_n they_o make_v they_o dance_n which_o be_v strange_a and_o wonderful_a when_o they_o require_v the_o oath_n of_o any_o person_n they_o put_v his_o hand_n in_o a_o pot_n where_o there_o be_v a_o serpent_n if_o he_o be_v not_o wound_v they_o hold_v his_o oath_n to_o be_v true_a but_o if_o he_o be_v bite_v they_o believe_v he_o perjure_a peirard_n add_v to_o this_o that_o they_o conjure_v the_o great_a and_o most_o subtle_a snake_n not_o to_o be_v hurt_v by_o they_o and_o baldaeus_n report_v the_o same_o chap._n ix_o that_o the_o opinion_n and_o practice_n of_o the_o african_a heathen_n agree_v at_o bottom_n with_o the_o sentiment_n and_o custom_n of_o the_o other_o pagan_n sect._n 1_o the_o heathen_n of_o africa_n be_v dull_a than_o the_o other_o because_o the_o man_n of_o letter_n be_v most_o or_o all_o mahometan_n we_o can_v have_v little_a knowledge_n of_o their_o opinion_n unless_o it_o be_v by_o their_o practice_n from_o they_o only_o we_o may_v infer_v their_o belief_n as_o to_o die_v matter_n in_o hand_n and_o tho'_o traveller_n have_v leave_v we_o but_o few_o observation_n i_o shall_v nevertheless_o examine_v they_o two_o way_n to_o know_v what_o sort_n of_o creature_n be_v esteem_v and_o worship_v as_o divine_a by_o those_o nation_n and_o afterward_o what_o sort_v of_o divination_n and_o witchcraft_n be_v in_o use_n among_o they_o among_o the_o best_a writer_n none_o have_v give_v more_o information_n than_o carolinus_n who_o therefore_o i_o shall_v take_v for_o my_o leader_n but_o add_v to_o his_o narration_n what_o i_o shall_v think_v convenient_a out_o of_o other_o author_n in_o proper_a place_n sect._n 2._o those_o african_n that_o without_o live_v under_o the_o law_n of_o christ_n or_o that_o of_o mahomet_n have_v nevertheless_o some_o knowledge_n of_o god_n distribute_v the_o deity_n among_o several_a creature_n as_o do_v all_o other_o heathen_n
tho'_o in_o the_o morning_n they_o find_v that_o he_o have_v not_o touch_v it_o sect._n 16._o i_o shall_v yet_o give_v a_o more_o particular_a relation_n of_o the_o caraibe_v draw_v from_o the_o description_n make_v by_o de_fw-fr la_fw-fr board_n who_o be_v send_v by_o the_o french_a king_n with_o the_o jesuit_n simon_n to_o convert_v that_o people_n what_o he_o have_v in_o his_o relation_n subservient_fw-fr to_o our_o design_n viz._n to_o know_v their_o sentiment_n concern_v the_o deity_n and_o the_o spirit_n and_o to_o be_v inform_v of_o their_o practice_n be_v as_o follow_v louquo_n who_o be_v the_o first_o man_n and_o caraibe_n and_o consequent_o the_o common-father_n of_o all_o the_o other_o be_v not_o make_v by_o any_o but_o descend_v from_o heaven_n here_o below_o where_o he_o live_v very_o long_o he_o have_v a_o great_a navel_n whence_o he_o bring_v out_o the_o first_o man_n as_o well_o as_o out_o of_o his_o thigh_n make_v there_o a_o incision_n there_o happen_v many_o story_n during_o his_o life_n that_o will_v be_v shameful_a and_o infamous_a to_o be_v report_v he_o make_v little_a fish_n from_o scrap_n and_o little_a bit_n of_o manjou_n which_o he_o throw_v into_o the_o sea_n but_o the_o great_a from_o great_a parcel_n of_o the_o same_o root_n he_o rise_v again_o three_o day_n after_o his_o death_n and_o return_v to_o heaven_n terrestrial_a animal_n be_v come_v since_o but_o they_o know_v not_o whence_o they_o believe_v that_o the_o heaven_n have_v be_v from_o all_o eternity_n but_o not_o the_o earth_n nor_o the_o sea_n that_o neither_o of_o they_o be_v in_o that_o fine_a disposition_n in_o which_o they_o now_o be_v their_o mover_n and_o first_o actor_n louquo_n have_v first_o make_v the_o earth_n soft_a smooth_a without_o mountain_n but_o they_o know_v not_o whence_o he_o have_v the_o matter_n of_o it_o the_o moon_n follow_v immediate_o but_o eversince_o she_o see_v the_o sun_n she_o get_v away_o and_o hide_v herself_o for_o shame_n and_o ever_o since_o show_v herself_o but_o at_o night_n they_o attribute_v the_o eclipse_n to_o mapoia_n the_o wicked_a spirit_n who_o endeavour_v to_o kill_v they_o they_o more_o esteem_v the_o m●on_n than_o the_o sun_n and_o for_o that_o reason_n rule_v the_o day_n by_o the_o moon_n and_o not_o by_o the_o sun_n never_o say_v a_o month_n but_o a_o moon_n nor_o how_o many_o day_n shall_v you_o be_v on_o your_o journey_n but_o how_o many_o night_n shall_v you_o sleep_v abroad_o sect._n 17._o their_o opinion_n concern_v the_o demon_n inferior_a god_n and_o hero_n may_v easy_o be_v learn_v they_o believe_v that_o all_o the_o star_n be_v caraibe_n and_o that_o racunnon_n be_v one_o of_o the_o first_o who_o louquo_n make_v he_o be_v change_v into_o a_o great_a snake_n that_o have_v a_o man_n head_n and_o always_o stand_v upon_o a_o cabalas_n which_o be_v a_o very_a thick_a hard_a high_a and_o straight_o tree_n but_o he_o be_v since_o transmute_v into_o a_o star_n savacon_n another_o caraibe_n and_o since_o a_o star_n be_v the_o captain_n of_o the_o hurricane_n and_o of_o thunder_n and_o it_o be_v he_o that_o cause_v great_a ra_n achinaon_n a_o caraibe_n and_o star_n cause_v little_a rain_n and_o great_a wind_n the_o star_n couromon_n raise_v a_o wind_n that_o make_v the_o sea_n ebb_n and_o flow_v they_o reckon_v and_o mark_v the_o year_n by_o the_o constellation_n chirity_n which_o be_v by_o they_o the_o name_n of_o the_o pleyade_n cavalnia_n be_v the_o captain_n of_o the_o zemean_n limacani_n be_v a_o comet_n send_v by_o the_o captain_n of_o the_o zemean_n to_o hurt_v when_o he_o be_v angry_a joalouca_n or_o the_o rainbow_n be_v a_o zemean_a too_o that_o make_v the_o caraibe_n sick_a when_o he_o find_v no_o victual_n if_o it_o appear_v to_o they_o at_o sea_n they_o take_v it_o as_o a_o good_a omen_n and_o say_v that_o it_o come_v to_o accompany_v they_o and_o procure_v they_o a_o good_a voyage_n but_o if_o it_o appear_v at_o land_n they_o hide_v themselves_o within_o their_o cottage_n fancy_v that_o it_o be_v a_o foreign_a zemean_a that_o have_v no_o master_n that_o be_v to_o say_v no_o piaie_n and_o therefore_o can_v do_v nothing_o but_o hurt_n by_o his_o evil_a influence_n and_o undoubted_o seek_v to_o kill_v some_o body_n sect._n 18._o there_o be_v several_a other_o thing_n of_o which_o they_o make_v zemean_n especial_o such_o as_o cause_v some_o terror_n or_o amazement_n as_o bat_n which_o they_o name_n boulliri_fw-la that_o fly_v by_o night_n about_o the_o house_n they_o believe_v that_o they_o keep_v they_o and_o that_o such_o as_o kill_v those_o creature_n become_v sick_n they_o have_v so_o many_o sort_n of_o boule_n bonum_fw-la that_o be_v to_o say_v bad_a omen_n that_o i_o can_v resolve_v myself_o to_o relate_v all_o their_o trifle_n and_o dream_n sect._n 19_o their_o religious_a worship_n chief_o consist_v in_o such_o divination_n and_o witchcraft_n as_o be_v agreeable_a to_o their_o strange_a notion_n assoon_o as_o they_o fall_v into_o a_o disease_n they_o fancy_v themselves_o to_o be_v bewitch_v and_o if_o they_o can_v catch_v the_o woman_n they_o suspect_v they_o kill_v or_o cause_v she_o to_o be_v kill_v for_o they_o common_o assault_v woman_n not_o so_o free_o dare_v make_v bold_a with_o man_n but_o before_o they_o kill_v she_o they_o exercise_v a_o unheard_a of_o cruelty_n upon_o the_o poor_a wretch_n their_o relation_n and_o friend_n go_v to_o catch_v she_o and_o cause_v she_o to_o rake_v up_o the_o ground_n in_o several_a place_n until_o she_o have_v find_v what_o they_o suppose_v she_o have_v hide_v and_o often_o that_o miserable_a woman_n confess_v a_o untruth_n to_o free_v herself_o from_o those_o torture_n when_o they_o have_v get_v that_o proof_n of_o she_o be_v a_o witch_n they_o put_v she_o to_o death_n in_o a_o most_o cruel_a and_o barbarous_a manner_n relate_v by_o the_o author_n who_o add_v that_o the_o caraibe_n fancy_n to_o have_v several_a other_o mean_n to_o preserve_v themselves_o from_o witchcraft_n for_o instance_n they_o put_v in_o a_o great_a gourd_n hair_n or_o some_o bone_n of_o their_o decease_a relation_n which_o they_o keep_v in_o their_o carbet_n for_o some_o witchcraft_n and_o say_v that_o the_o ghost_n of_o the_o decease_a speak_v therein_o and_o advertise_n they_o of_o the_o design_n of_o their_o enemy_n sect._n 20._o divination_n be_v make_v by_o the_o mean_n of_o zemean_n that_o be_v to_o say_v familiar_a spirit_n each_o pica_n or_o boy_n have_v his_o own_o and_o rule_v himself_o by_o the_o advice_n of_o his_o detestable_a oracle_n thus_o to_o know_v the_o event_n of_o their_o disease_n they_o cause_v a_o piaice_n to_o come_v at_o night_n who_o immediate_o order_v all_o the_o fire_n of_o the_o cottage_n to_o be_v put_v out_o and_o the_o suspect_a person_n to_o be_v go_v than_o he_o withdraw_v into_o a_o corner_n where_o he_o cause_v the_o sick_a to_o be_v bring_v and_o have_v smoke_v a_o little_a tobacco_n he_o bruise_n it_o in_o his_o hand_n and_o blow_n into_o the_o air_n shake_v and_o snake_v his_o finger_n it_o be_v say_v that_o the_o zemean_n fail_v not_o to_o come_v at_o the_o smell_n of_o that_o precious_a incense_n and_o perfume_n by_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o boy_n who_o doubtless_o be_v in_o a_o compact_n with_o the_o devil_n there_o be_v interrogated_a it_o answer_v with_o a_o audible_a voice_n and_o as_o it_o be_v at_o a_o distance_n to_o the_o query_n put_v to_o it_o afterward_o he_o come_v near_o the_o sick_a person_n stroke_n and_o gentle_o handle_v several_a time_n the_o afflict_a part_n still_o blow_v upon_o it_o and_o sometime_o draw_v or_o feign_v to_o draw_v out_o of_o it_o thorn_n little_a parcel_n of_o manioc_n wood_n bones_o or_o little_a fish-bone_n which_o his_o devil_n supply_v he_o with_o persuade_v the_o sick_a that_o it_o be_v that_o which_o cause_v his_o pain_n he_o often_o suck_v the_o ache_a part_n and_o immediate_o go_v out_o of_o the_o cottage_n to_o spew_v up_o say_v he_o the_o venom_n thus_o the_o crazy_a distemper_a be_v cure_v rather_o by_o imagination_n than_o reality_n it_o be_v observable_a that_o he_o cure_v neither_o ague_n nor_o wound_n as_o those_o of_o arrow_n or_o a_o knife_n not_o a_o word_n be_v to_o be_v say_v in_o that_o diabolical_a assembly_n nor_o any_o noise_n to_o be_v make_v no_o not_o so_o much_o as_o to_o let_v a_o fart_n otherwise_o the_o zemean_n fly_v away_o the_o caraibe_n believe_v that_o all_o the_o time_n the_o piaie_n go_v above_o and_o come_v back_o only_o when_o the_o zemean_n be_v go_v as_o a_o gratuity_n they_o present_v in_o their_o cottage_n without_o other_o ceremony_n the_o zemean_a and_o the_o piaie_n too_o for_o the_o trouble_n he_o have_v be_v at_o in_o call_v out_o the_o spirit_n some_o refreshment_n as_o some_o ouicou_n and_o
be_v in_o the_o elysian_a field_n which_o they_o fancy_v to_o be_v beyond_o the_o indian_a sea_n the_o author_n give_v the_o name_n of_o elysian_a field_n to_o the_o place_n he_o describe_v because_o of_o the_o relation_n he_o have_v find_v betwixt_o they_o and_o those_o the_o greek_n have_v call_v by_o that_o name_n chap._n xi_o where_o all_o the_o sentiment_n and_o practice_n of_o so_o many_o different_a heathen_n be_v useful_o compare_v together_o sect._n 1_o hitherto_o we_o have_v but_o gather_v the_o various_a opinion_n of_o the_o ancient_n and_o modern_a pagan_n and_o relate_v their_o custom_n without_o pass_v any_o judgement_n upon_o they_o neither_o be_v it_o time_n to_o do_v it_o as_o yet_o we_o must_v first_o see_v of_o what_o use_v it_o may_v prove_v to_o be_v inform_v of_o all_o these_o thing_n to_o which_o end_n we_o must_v again_o consider_v together_o what_o have_v be_v hitherto_o relate_v to_o see_v what_o will_v be_v the_o result_n of_o it_o on_o the_o one_o side_n we_o find_v that_o nation_n that_o extreme_o differ_v in_o the_o opinion_n they_o have_v concern_v the_o god_n and_o the_o spirit_n yet_o on_o the_o other_o side_n they_o wonderful_o agree_v upon_o the_o same_o subject_n they_o differ_v in_o the_o name_n they_o give_v they_o which_o be_v not_o strange_a the_o tongue_n be_v so_o different_a and_o all_o the_o nation_n not_o ascribe_v the_o same_o property_n to_o spiritual_a being_n thence_o proceed_v a_o second_o difference_n that_o they_o make_v not_o their_o number_n equal_a nor_o distinguish_v they_o in_o the_o same_o manner_n as_o to_o their_o dignity_n and_o administration_n or_o as_o to_o their_o operation_n as_o it_o have_v particular_o be_v show_v in_o the_o 2_o chap._n sect._n 21._o concern_v the_o inhabitant_n of_o asia_n but_o the_o difference_n to_o be_v find_v among_o they_o be_v not_o material_a and_o must_v be_v account_v as_o inconsiderable_a comparative_o to_o the_o conformity_n that_o be_v betwixt_o they_o all_o that_o look_v as_o a_o work_n to_o which_o they_o shall_v unanimous_o have_v conspire_v sect._n 2._o whatever_o have_v be_v hitherto_o quote_v be_v either_o collect_v from_o the_o write_n of_o the_o pagan_n or_o take_v from_o what_o pass_v among_o they_o and_o relate_v partly_o to_o their_o sentiment_n partly_o to_o their_o practice_n they_o agree_v in_o their_o sentiment_n in_o two_o respect_n as_o their_o understanding_n be_v yet_o in_o some_o manner_n illuminate_v by_o the_o natural_a light_n or_o as_o it_o be_v darken_v by_o error_n i_o shall_v mark_v both_o these_o conformity_n and_o at_o the_o same_o time_n the_o place_n in_o which_o they_o have_v be_v before_o relate_v where_o the_o instance_n be_v to_o be_v find_v because_o it_o will_v be_v too_o long_a and_o tedious_a to_o repeat_v they_o every_o time_n and_o that_o i_o may_v hope_v the_o reader_n will_v take_v the_o trouble_n to_o look_v they_o over_o or_o be_v all_o fresh_a in_o his_o memory_n he_o will_v excuse_v i_o from_o a_o unnecessary_a trouble_n sect._n 3_o as_o to_o the_o first_o conformity_n if_o we_o attentive_o reflect_v upon_o so_o many_o instance_n and_o testimony_n as_o be_v contain_v in_o the_o 2d_o 5_o 6_o 8_o 9th_o and_o 10_o chapt._n we_o shall_v perceive_v that_o those_o that_o be_v least_o provide_v with_o human_a light_n and_o reason_n agree_v nevertheless_o upon_o the_o most_o important_a point_n refer_v the_o reader_n to_o the_o place_n where_o the_o instance_n be_v set_v down_o all_o the_o heathen_n therefore_o whether_o ancient_n or_o modern_a european_n asiatick_n african_n north_n and_o south_n american_n agree_v in_o these_o five_o principal_a point_n which_o be_v of_o a_o undeniable_a truth_n 1._o that_o there_o be_v only_o a_o first_o be_v or_o a_o supreme_a divinity_n chap._n 2._o sect._n 3_o chap._n 7_o sect._n 1_o 2_o 3_o 5_o 7._o chap._n 10._o sect._n 6_o 11_o 16_o 24_o 27._o 2._o that_o there_o be_v spirit_n who_o have_v have_v a_o beginning_n and_o that_o they_o be_v distinguish_v from_o humane_a soul_n chap._n 1._o sect._n 2_o 9_o 10_o 11._o chap._n 7._o sect._n 2_o 9_o 12_o 18._o chap._n 10._o sect._n 3_o 13._o 3._o that_o those_o spirit_n be_v either_o good_a or_o bad_a some_o friend_n and_o other_o enemy_n to_o mankind_n chap._n 2._o sect._n 11_o 15._o chap._n 7._o sect._n 9_o 10._o chap._n 10._o sect._n 5_o 13_o 14_o 27._o 14._o that_o humane_a soul_n die_v not_o with_o their_o body_n chap._n 2._o sect._n 15_o 16_o 17._o chap._n 6._o sect._n 3_o chap._n 7._o sect._n 2_o 3_o 5_o 6_o 12_o 20._o chap._n 9_o sect._n 4._o chap._n 10._o sect._n 8_o 12_o 14_o 22_o 25_o 27._o 5._o that_o the_o good_a or_o evil_a we_o have_v do_v will_v be_v reward_v or_o punish_v after_o this_o life_n chap._n 2_o sect._n 18._o chap._n 7._o sect._n 2_o 5_o 6_o 8_o 16_o 17_o 18_o 19_o 20._o chap._n 10._o sect._n 3_o 12_o 25._o for_o if_o in_o the_o sentiment_n of_o epicure_n there_o appear_v something_o contrary_n to_o this_o last_o proposition_n i_o shall_v speak_v of_o it_o and_o explain_v it_o in_o its_o proper_a place_n sect._n 4._o but_o the_o proof_n of_o the_o obscurity_n that_o be_v spread_v over_o their_o understanding_n discover_v itself_o in_o their_o other_o opinion_n for_o it_o be_v observable_a that_o in_o all_o their_o reason_n even_o those_o in_o which_o they_o speak_v the_o truth_n they_o must_v take_v two_o way_n by_o compel_v the_o divine_a majesty_n to_o descend_v from_o heaven_n upon_o earth_n and_o by_o raise_v the_o humbleness_n of_o man_n from_o the_o earth_n to_o the_o heaven_n so_o that_o they_o have_v too_o high_a a_o opinion_n of_o the_o creature_n and_o too_o despicable_a of_o the_o creator_n that_o mistake_n which_o proceed_v from_o a_o confuse_a notion_n of_o what_o belong_v to_o the_o divine_a nature_n and_o to_o that_o of_o create_a being_n leave_v they_o to_o gross_a error_n and_o that_o be_v source_n of_o their_o idolatry_n and_o magic_n for_o it_o be_v easy_a to_o perceive_v that_o none_o of_o those_o practice_n flow_v from_o those_o 5_o truth_n just_o now_o mention_v but_o only_o from_o a_o false_a and_o erroneous_a idea_n as_o we_o shall_v see_v if_o we_o hear_v in_o few_o word_n the_o result_n of_o the_o precede_a observation_n sect._n 5._o concern_v the_o divine_a essence_n we_o see_v first_o that_o they_o conceive_v the_o divine_a greatness_n and_o excellence_n only_o with_o relation_n to_o their_o idea_n of_o the_o human_a nature_n since_o they_o ascribe_v to_o the_o god_n both_o superior_a and_o inferior_a a_o human_a original_a marriage_n beget_v of_o child_n etc._n etc._n chap._n 7._o sect._n 5_o 6_o 17._o chap._n 10._o sect._n 16._o second_o that_o they_o have_v too_o vile_a and_o abject_a thought_n of_o the_o perfection_n of_o god_n fancy_v that_o he_o will_v tire_v himself_o and_o impair_v his_o glory_n and_o felicity_n if_o he_o shall_v take_v in_o his_o own_o hand_n the_o direction_n of_o all_o thing_n chap._n 2._o sect._n 4._o chap._n 10._o sect._n 13._o for_o which_o reason_n they_o have_v associate_v with_o he_o inferior_a god_n as_o governor_n under_o he_o chap._n 2._o sect._n 7.12_o chap._n 7._o sect._n 2_o 8._o chap._n 10._o sect._n 6_o 7_o 12_o 13._o three_o that_o they_o fix_v not_o goodness_n as_o a_o nccessary_a idea_n to_o the_o deity_n since_o they_o have_v almost_o all_o a_o wicked_a god_n as_o well_o as_o a_o good_a chap._n 2._o sect._n 4.12_o chap._n 7._o sect._n 3_o chap._n 10._o sect._n 5._o however_o with_o this_o difference_n that_o they_o always_o place_v the_o good_a above_o the_o bad_a tho'_o some_o honour_v they_o most_o who_o fright_v they_o most_o as_o the_o tapaians_n and_o the_o inhabitant_n of_o new_a england_n chap._n 10._o sect._n 5.23_o four_o that_o they_o easy_o confound_v the_o creator_n with_o the_o creature_n chap._n 4._o sect._n 7._o chap._n 6._o sect._n 2_o 3._o chap._n 10._o sect._n 6_o 7_o 17_o 23_o 24._o sect._n 6._o concern_v spirit_n it_o may_v be_v observe_v first_o that_o they_o make_v not_o a_o suitable_a distinction_n betwixt_o spiritual_a and_o corporeal_a substance_n chap._n 2._o sect_n 1_o 6._o whence_o proceed_v that_o they_o have_v attribute_v not_o only_o to_o the_o spirit_n but_o also_o to_o the_o deity_n itself_o bodily_a motion_n and_o property_n diversion_n affix_v above_o in_o the_o heaven_n in_o the_o air_n upon_o earth_n or_o under_o it_o chap._n 2._o sect._n 14_o 16._o chap._n 7._o sect._n 6.14_o 18._o chap._n 10._o sect._n 12_o 25._o second_o that_o consider_v the_o spirit_n or_o demon_n as_o inferior_a god_n and_o minister_n of_o the_o great_a god_n they_o distinguish_v they_o into_o several_a order_n as_o into_o so_o many_o degree_n according_a to_o the_o administration_n they_o have_v be_v be_v entrust_v with_o chap._n 2._o sect._n 6_o 14._o chap._n 2._o sect._n 7_o 8_o 11_o
12_o 13_o 18._o three_o that_o conceive_v not_o what_o difference_n there_o be_v betwixt_o the_o soul_n of_o man_n and_o that_o of_o beast_n some_o be_v fall_v into_o that_o gross_a error_n as_o to_o ascribe_v to_o man_n and_o beast_n a_o soul_n of_o the_o same_o nature_n chap._n 7._o sect._n 14._o without_o which_o it_o have_v be_v impossible_a that_o the_o opinion_n of_o pythagoras_n concern_v the_o transmigration_n of_o soul_n into_o the_o body_n of_o other_o man_n and_o beast_n indifferent_o shall_v have_v take_v so_o deep_a root_n and_o have_v spread_v so_o far_o into_o the_o world_n chap._n 2._o sect._n 17._o chap._n 7_o sect._n 14_o 15_o 16_o 17_o 18._o four_o that_o from_o the_o same_o source_n this_o sentiment_n have_v visible_o proceed_v that_o the_o spirit_n be_v wander_v as_o well_o as_o the_o soul_n of_o man_n after_o their_o death_n chap._n 2._o sect._n 15._o chap._n 6._o sect._n 2._o chap._n 7._o sect._n 19_o 20._o chap._n 10._o sect._n 11._o sect._n 7._o what_o contribute_v most_o to_o the_o vilify_n of_o the_o deity_n be_v that_o they_o deify_v even_o man_n either_o during_o their_o life_n or_o after_o their_o death_n witness_v the_o ancient_a greek_n and_o roman_n who_o transform_v the_o passion_n of_o man_n and_o the_o motion_n of_o the_o heart_n into_o so_o many_o god_n and_o goddess_n or_o as_o the_o modern_a cannibal_n who_o be_v very_o near_o of_o the_o same_o mind_n as_o have_v be_v show_v chap._n 2._o sect._n 14._o chap._n 7._o sect._n 5_o 6._o chap._n 10._o sect._n 14._o which_o however_o be_v not_o common_o use_v but_o after_o death_n as_o appear_v by_o the_o apotheosis_n of_o the_o ancient_n chap._n 2._o sect._n 13._o and_o be_v not_o where_o bring_v to_o such_o a_o light_n as_o among_o the_o cannibal_n as_o have_v be_v say_v chap._n 10._o sect._n 12_o 16._o that_o they_o believe_v the_o whole_a race_n of_o the_o god_n issue_v from_o their_o ancestor_n and_o that_o they_o themselves_o be_v of_o celestial_a origin_n from_o the_o same_o spring_n be_v derive_v the_o sentiment_n of_o the_o existence_n of_o the_o genii_n or_o zemean_n that_o be_v of_o helpful_a spirit_n the_o description_n of_o who_o may_v be_v see_v in_o several_a author_n sect._n 8._o it_o be_v now_o easy_a to_o conceive_v on_o what_o ground_n be_v found_v the_o divination_n and_o magic_n of_o the_o ancient_n that_o be_v the_o same_o with_o the_o prediction_n and_o witchcraft_n of_o the_o modern_a heathen_n for_o as_o to_o their_o foretell_v or_o divination_n it_o be_v ground_v upon_o this_o first_o every_o god_n have_v his_o people_n who_o he_o favour_v and_o protect_v or_o his_o own_o property_n for_o which_o reason_n they_o put_v question_n to_o he_o concern_v that_o which_o be_v to_o happen_v to_o his_o people_n and_o what_o be_v to_o be_v do_v on_o that_o occasion_n second_o that_o every_o god_n have_v his_o enemy_n for_o which_o reason_n every_o one_o look_n for_o help_v against_o the_o god_n of_o who_o he_o be_v to_o receive_v damage_n and_o implore_v the_o assistance_n of_o such_o god_n as_o be_v esteem_v to_o be_v their_o most_o violent_a enemy_n three_o that_o every_o man_n have_v his_o god_n or_o particular_a spirit_n and_o therefore_o every_o one_o mistake_v his_o own_o passion_n and_o whatever_o come_v into_o his_o fancy_n for_o divine_a inspiration_n and_o motion_n especial_o when_o dream_n supply_v he_o with_o the_o occasion_n of_o it_o not_o know_v that_o the_o employment_n or_o accident_n that_o have_v precede_v the_o dream_n be_v the_o origin_n of_o they_o or_o be_v hinder_v by_o his_o prejudices_fw-la to_o make_v a_o exact_a enquiry_n after_o their_o possible_a cause_n four_o that_o it_o be_v by_o confound_v the_o deity_n with_o the_o creature_n that_o there_o have_v be_v introduce_v so_o many_o sort_n of_o divination_n and_o prognostic_n draw_v from_o the_o star_n from_o the_o thunder_n from_o bird_n mountain_n wood_n water_n and_o from_o all_o the_o thing_n in_o which_o it_o be_v believe_v that_o some_o deity_n be_v discoverable_a five_o that_o from_o the_o belief_n that_o the_o soul_n of_o the_o dead_a be_v wander_v about_o their_o corpse_n it_o be_v easy_a to_o take_v occasion_n to_o conjure_v up_o ghost_n sect._n 9_o concern_v the_o witchcraft_n we_o shall_v only_o make_v the_o follow_a consideration_n first_o that_o it_o be_v not_o strange_a that_o distinguish_v not_o only_o create_v spirit_n but_o even_o the_o god_n into_o good_a and_o bad_a they_o shall_v endeavour_v to_o set_v they_o one_o against_o another_o and_o to_o defend_v themselves_o by_o the_o help_n of_o the_o good_a or_o of_o some_o of_o the_o wicked_a against_o another_o or_o to_o avenge_v themselves_o by_o the_o power_n of_o one_o god_n of_o the_o wrong_n they_o suppose_v to_o have_v receive_v from_o another_o second_o that_o have_v forge_v to_o themselves_o so_o many_o sort_n of_o god_n and_o spirit_n superior_a and_o inferior_a it_o be_v no_o wonder_n they_o shall_v believe_v to_o destroy_v the_o power_n of_o the_o less_o by_o the_o assistance_n of_o the_o great_a three_o that_o have_v so_o base_a thought_n of_o the_o god_n who_o they_o subject_a to_o the_o same_o passion_n as_o man_n and_o thus_o deify_v human_a passion_n themselves_o they_o act_n consequent_o by_o stir_v they_o up_o against_o their_o enemy_n as_o it_o come_v into_o their_o fancy_n four_o that_o put_v some_o of_o their_o god_n so_o low_a and_o in_o so_o great_a a_o familiarity_n with_o the_o spirit_n they_o seem_v to_o assume_v to_o themselves_o the_o quality_n of_o their_o director_n and_o to_o be_v able_a to_o make_v the_o divine_a operation_n even_o in_o the_o most_o hide_a thing_n subservient_fw-fr to_o what_o use_n they_o please_v chap._n 6._o sect._n 4._o sect_n 10._o there_o be_v yet_o something_o to_o be_v say_v upon_o divination_n and_o witchcraft_n together_o which_o partly_o concern_v the_o thing_n itself_o and_o partly_o the_o gesture_n of_o the_o body_n use_v in_o it_o what_o concern_v the_o thing_n itself_o come_v to_o this_o first_o that_o the_o opinion_n of_o the_o heathen_n concern_v the_o genii_n or_o familiar_a spirit_n and_o the_o spirit_n wander_v about_o grave_n make_v they_o believe_v that_o something_o may_v be_v operate_v by_o the_o mean_n of_o grave_n and_o carcase_n for_o which_o reason_n they_o use_v the_o bone_n of_o the_o dead_a in_o their_o witchcraft_n and_o consult_v they_o in_o their_o divination_n in_o hope_n of_o get_v a_o answer_n from_o the_o god_n or_o spirit_n which_o operate_v in_o they_o or_o abide_v near_o they_o chap._n 10._o sect._n 11_o 15._o second_o that_o according_a to_o this_o their_o belief_n of_o the_o existence_n of_o so_o many_o sort_n of_o spirit_n whereof_o most_o part_n be_v wicked_a spirit_n that_o walk_v and_o wander_v every_o where_n they_o be_v always_o ready_a in_o any_o unforeseen_a disease_n mortality_n or_o sinister_a accident_n to_o cast_v the_o suspicion_n upon_o their_o enemy_n or_o envious_a who_o have_v bewitch_v they_o for_o believe_v that_o the_o inferior_a god_n or_o spirit_n act_n according_a to_o the_o will_n of_o the_o man_n to_o who_o they_o belong_v they_o must_v consequent_o believe_v that_o those_o man_n will_v not_o fail_v to_o effect_v reciprocal_o the_o one_o against_o the_o other_o whatever_o the_o help_n and_o power_n of_o the_o spirit_n will_v allow_v now_o those_o suspicion_n that_o will_v sure_o move_v man_n to_o seek_v by_o who_o they_o have_v be_v bewitch_v or_o the_o cause_n matter_n and_o foundation_n of_o divination_n chap._n 10._o sect._n 8_o 16._o sect._n 11._o as_o to_o the_o posture_n use_v in_o witchcraft_n first_o the_o corpereal_a idea_n which_o they_o have_v of_o the_o spirit_n and_o of_o the_o god_n themselves_o move_v they_o doubtless_o to_o use_v so_o many_o outward_a gesture_n in_o their_o conjuration_n chap._n 10._o sect_n 16._o but_o there_o be_v still_o another_o reason_n of_o that_o custom_n viz._n that_o the_o priest_n who_o be_v impostor_n make_v use_n of_o they_o to_o impose_v so_o much_o the_o easy_a upon_o the_o simplicity_n of_o the_o vulgar_a second_o consider_v how_o the_o opinion_n of_o pythagoras_n be_v become_v almost_o universal_a it_o may_v be_v methinks_v conceive_v at_o the_o same_o time_n how_o it_o be_v possible_a that_o man_n shall_v place_v some_o virtue_n in_o letter_n and_o number_n by_o gather_v and_o dispose_v they_o in_o such_o or_o such_o a_o way_n and_o consequent_o in_o the_o pronunciation_n of_o some_o certain_a word_n for_o the_o same_o pythagoras_n have_v believe_v that_o the_o virtue_n of_o the_o deity_n influence_v the_o proportion_n and_o harmony_n of_o number_n now_o the_o letter_n of_o the_o alphabet_n be_v employ_v to_o mark_v the_o number_n not_o only_o among_o the_o greek_n and_o hebrew_n but_o by_o all_o the_o other_o nation_n that_o have_v some_o knowledge_n of_o letter_n it_o follow_v
that_o there_o be_v not_o one_o word_n but_o it_o can_v make_v up_o a_o number_n whence_o it_o may_v rational_o be_v infer_v that_o such_o or_o such_o a_o word_n compose_v in_o such_o or_o such_o a_o manner_n of_o such_o or_o such_o or_o such_o letter_n more_o or_o less_o have_v according_a to_o their_o opinion_n more_o or_o less_o power_n in_o witchcraft_n three_o beside_o the_o ordinary_a number_n they_o use_v also_o name_n and_o character_n as_o it_o be_v see_v at_o this_o day_n especial_o among_o the_o laplander_n and_o finlander_n who_o enchant_a drum_n be_v spot_v with_o the_o like_a character_n chap._n 6._o sect._n 5._o sect._n 12._o but_o i_o have_v nor_o yet_o speak_v of_o what_o be_v most_o important_a in_o these_o conjuration_n that_o be_v use_v as_o well_o for_o divination_n as_o witchcraft_n which_o consist_v in_o this_o that_o they_o be_v part_n of_o the_o pagan_a religion_n and_o even_o make_v it_o whole_o up_o among_o some_o nation_n especial_o in_o the_o west-indies_n chap._n 9_o sect._n 6._o chap._n 10._o sect._n 16._o and_o it_o be_v almost_o impossible_a it_o shall_v be_v otherwise_o since_o their_o whole_a religion_n turn_v upon_o their_o opinion_n of_o the_o god_n or_o draw_v it_o be_v original_a from_o thence_o first_o they_o look_v by_o no_o mean_n upon_o their_o practice_n nor_o the_o scope_n they_o aim_v at_o as_o thing_n evil_a of_o their_o own_o nature_n but_o only_o by_o the_o bad_a use_n that_o be_v make_v of_o they_o wherefore_o ancient_o the_o magi_n and_o diviner_n be_v find_v among_o the_o king_n be_v attendant_n and_o in_o the_o temple_n as_o be_v still_o at_o this_o day_n the_o brainines_n in_o the_o east-indies_n the_o fetisseros_fw-la in_o guinea_n the_o baivas_n or_o piais_n in_o peru_n and_o the_o country_n of_o the_o cannibal_n etc._n etc._n and_o several_a other_o of_o the_o same_o quality_n so_o that_o no_o body_n be_v acknowledge_v for_o wise_a doctor_n priest_n prophet_n nor_o become_v councillor_n of_o state_n unless_o he_o be_v divine_a or_o magician_n in_o the_o sense_n that_o have_v be_v set_v down_o the_o holy_a scripture_n show_v the_o same_o in_o the_o person_n janne_n jambres_n balaam_n daniel_n and_o his_o companion_n of_o which_o we_o have_v say_v something_o before_o chap._n 4._o sect._n 1_o 4._o and_o it_o may_v be_v observe_v in_o the_o general_a instance_n that_o have_v be_v allege_v that_o the_o heathen_n have_v public_a school_n to_o teach_v those_o art_n that_o the_o priest_n especial_o instruct_v the_o ●●ople_n in_o that_o ministry_n and_o train_v they_o up_o from_o their_o youth_n which_o be_v still_o practise_v among_o the_o brutish_a and_o dull_a laplander_n second_o we_o see_v at_o the_o same_o time_n for_o what_o reason_n the_o entrail_n of_o sacrifice_a beast_n and_o some_o meat_n and_o dress_v herb_n be_v employ_v in_o their_o witchcraft_n and_o divination_n viz._n because_o in_o their_o opinion_n something_o divine_n be_v mix_v with_o they_o sect._n 13._o it_o be_v therefore_o certain_a that_o all_o their_o practice_n be_v ground_v upon_o a_o certain_a knowledge_n and_o partly_o upon_o vain_a conjecture_n and_o very_o great_a error_n for_o to_o seek_v the_o deity_n and_o to_o fear_v it_o be_v a_o effect_n of_o the_o natural_a knowledge_n of_o god_n which_o man_n keep_v in_o the_o midst_n of_o their_o great_a corruption_n but_o to_o admit_v so_o many_o sort_n of_o deity_n of_o such_o a_o low_a rank_n and_o such_o a_o contemptible_a nature_n and_o to_o serve_v he_o in_o so_o many_o different_a way_n be_v a_o effect_n of_o the_o corruption_n of_o the_o mind_n which_o let_v it_o be_v say_v in_o reference_n to_o those_o that_o acknowledge_v one_o god_n or_o spirit_n and_o who_o believe_v the_o immortality_n of_o the_o soul_n to_o which_o believe_v the_o opinion_n of_o the_o epicure_n be_v not_o whole_o opposite_a tho'_o they_o seem_v to_o deny_v both_o or_o at_o least_o to_o call_v they_o in_o question_n for_o epicure_n and_o his_o modern_a follower_n deny_v not_o so_o much_o the_o existence_n of_o a_o god_n and_o of_o spirit_n as_o they_o be_v earnest_a to_o persuade_v such_o as_o believe_v both_o that_o their_o practice_n bely_v their_o faith_n and_o be_v not_o agreeable_a to_o their_o principle_n and_o therefore_o it_o be_v impossible_a that_o one_o shall_v be_v both_o a_o epicure_n and_o a_o sorcerer_n or_o a_o divine_a and_o on_o the_o contrary_a no_o heathen_a ever_o endeavour_v to_o contradict_v the_o hypothesis_n of_o epicure_n without_o admit_v those_o art_n and_o their_o effect_n sect._n 14._o for_o a_o great_a certainty_n it_o will_v be_v convenient_a to_o hear_v those_o philosopher_n speak_v in_o their_o own_o word_n gassendus_fw-la have_v collect_v part_n of_o what_o they_o say_v sect._n 11._o chap_n 6._o it_o be_v the_o same_o thing_n that_o god_n shall_v govern_v the_o world_n by_o himself_o as_o some_o affirm_v or_o as_o other_o assert_v by_o minister_n general_o call_v genii_n or_o demon_n for_o when_o all_o be_v do_v thing_n go_v nevertheless_o their_o usual_a way_n in_o great_a part_n as_o tho'_o there_o be_v no_o such_o minister_n and_o tho'_o it_o be_v grant_v that_o there_o be_v some_o they_o can_v not_o be_v such_o as_o they_o be_v fancy_v viz._n of_o human_a shape_n and_o converse_v with_o we_o i_o will_v not_o say_v that_o be_v for_o the_o most_o part_n wicked_a they_o can_v not_o lead_v a_o long_a and_o happy_a life_n because_o malignity_n be_v join_v to_o ignorance_n and_o tend_v to_o ruin_v that_o be_v what_o they_o say_v concern_v spirit_n let_v we_o then_o speak_v of_o what_o be_v practise_v upon_o that_o account_n they_o use_v to_o allege_v divination_n as_o a_o proof_n both_o of_o providence_n and_o of_o the_o existence_n of_o spirit_n but_o i_o look_v with_o sorrow_n upon_o that_o human_a weakness_n which_o seek_v for_o oracle_n even_o in_o dream_n as_o tho'_o god_n be_v set_v upon_o stilt_n come_v by_o frightful_a vision_n to_o forewarn_v man_n in_o their_o deep_a sleep_n of_o what_o be_v to_o happen_v to_o they_o as_o tho'_o fortune_n and_o chance_n be_v not_o sufficient_a to_o produce_v such_o event_n without_o mix_v god_n not_o only_o with_o the_o sun_n and_o moon_n and_o several_a other_o kind_n of_o animal_n but_o also_o with_o all_o sort_n of_o stone_n and_o brass_n those_o that_o speak_v so_o make_v it_o evident_a that_o they_o rather_o have_v to_o deny_v the_o existence_n of_o god_n and_o spirit_n than_o to_o acknowledge_v they_o such_o as_o the_o other_o heathen_n believe_v they_o and_o to_o be_v oblige_v to_o own_v themselves_o sorcerer_n and_o diviner_n by_o grant_v that_o they_o exist_v so_o much_o for_o paganism_n it_o be_v time_n to_o proceed_v further_o chap._n xii_o what_o be_v the_o opinion_n of_o the_o jew_n and_o how_o necessary_a it_o be_v to_o examine_v they_o sect._n 1_o we_o have_v hitherto_o only_o consider_v paganism_n which_o have_v no_o other_o light_n but_o that_o of_o nature_n now_o we_o shall_v inquire_v what_o those_o that_o be_v illuminate_v with_o the_o light_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n believe_v or_o practice_v upon_o that_o account_n in_o the_o mean_a while_n it_o must_v be_v observe_v that_o they_o be_v not_o all_o of_o one_o sense_n be_v divide_v into_o jew_n mahometan_n and_o christian_n which_o difference_n proceed_v from_o the_o inequality_n of_o the_o light_n they_o have_v receive_v or_o make_v use_n of_o i_o shall_v begin_v with_o those_o that_o be_v at_o great_a distance_n from_o christianity_n and_o consequent_o the_o near_a to_o paganism_n it_o seem_v that_o the_o follower_n of_o mahomet_n shall_v have_v that_o place_n so_o much_o the_o more_o because_o we_o have_v favourable_a prejudices_fw-la on_o behalf_n of_o the_o jew_n as_o have_v ancient_o be_v the_o people_n of_o god_n but_o notwithstanding_o what_o they_o have_v be_v they_o be_v now_o so_o much_o degenerate_v that_o the_o belief_n of_o the_o mahometan_n may_v be_v say_v to_o have_v more_o conformity_n with_o we_o than_o they_o have_v both_o detest_v idolatry_n and_o acknowledge_v one_o god_n and_o take_v his_o word_n for_o the_o rule_n of_o their_o faith_n the_o jew_n receive_v only_o the_o old_a testament_n but_o the_o mahometan_n admit_v also_o of_o the_o new_a add_v the_o alcoran_n or_o mahomet_n law_n to_o those_o of_o moses_n and_o christ_n in_o order_n to_o correct_v and_o perfect_v they_o both_o the_o jew_n do_v almost_o the_o same_o as_o to_o the_o law_n of_o moses_n by_o the_o addition_n of_o the_o talmud_n which_o contain_v the_o tradition_n of_o the_o ancient_n but_o if_o the_o opinion_n of_o both_o party_n be_v deep_o search_v into_o perhaps_o it_o will_v be_v find_v that_o those_o of_o the_o mahometan_n favour_n more_o the_o infallibility_n of_o the_o law_n and_o gospel_n than_o those_o of_o the_o jew_n that_o of_o the_o law_n alone_o add_v
to_o this_o that_o christ_n be_v acknowledge_v by_o the_o mahometan_n for_o a_o great_a prophet_n and_o honour_v in_o that_o quality_n whereas_o he_o be_v horrible_o blaspheme_v by_o the_o jew_n for_o these_o reason_n i_o say_v that_o the_o mahometan_n be_v half_o near_o to_o we_o than_o the_o modern_a jew_n but_o what_o need_v we_o any_o far_a proof_n since_o as_o to_o this_o matter_n it_o be_v plain_a that_o the_o jew_n be_v less_o from_o paganism_n than_o the_o mahometan_n as_o shall_v appear_v by_o the_o proof_n i_o shall_v produce_v sect._n 2._o as_o long_o as_o we_o have_v have_v to_o do_v with_o heathen_n only_o we_o need_v but_o to_o make_v a_o inquiry_n after_o their_o opinion_n concern_v their_o god_n the_o spirit_n and_o the_o soul_n but_o here_o the_o question_n be_v not_o concern_v the_o plurality_n of_o god_n for_o tho'_o former_o the_o jew_n have_v be_v extraordinary_o incline_v to_o idolatry_n they_o have_v now_o such_o a_o great_a aversion_n for_o polytheism_n ever_o since_o 2300_o year_n that_o they_o be_v return_v from_o the_o babylonian_a captivity_n that_o they_o will_v acknowledge_v but_o one_o person_n in_o the_o divine_a unity_n they_o believe_v by_o the_o light_n of_o the_o holy_a writ_n that_o this_o only_a god_n be_v almighty_a and_o sufficient_a to_o himself_o and_o to_o all_o thing_n which_o he_o have_v create_v of_o nothing_o and_o govern_v and_o maintain_v alone_o among_o his_o creature_n they_o reckon_v angel_n and_o man_n and_o think_v that_o the_o last_o have_v a_o soul_n more_o excellent_a than_o that_o of_o bruit_n though_o far_o inferior_a to_o the_o angelical_a perfection_n such_o have_v be_v in_o all_o time_n the_o belief_n of_o the_o jew_n and_o so_o far_o be_v more_o agreeable_a to_o the_o christian_a faith_n then_o that_o of_o the_o mahometan_n as_o we_o shall_v say_v hereafter_o sect._n 3_o but_o the_o state_n of_o the_o jewish_a religion_n whilst_o the_o first_o temple_n stand_v must_v be_v well_o distinguish_v from_o that_o into_o which_o it_o be_v insensible_o fall_v the_o jew_n of_o that_o time_n be_v orthodox_n save_v only_o those_o who_o suffer_v themselves_o to_o be_v carry_v into_o idolatry_n and_o undoubted_o they_o have_v no_o other_o opinion_n of_o the_o angel_n demon_n and_o soul_n of_o man_n but_o what_o the_o holy_a write_n still_o teach_v we_o so_o that_o if_o we_o still_o look_v upon_o they_o as_o different_a from_o we_o it_o be_v because_o we_o consider_v those_o of_o latter_a time_n when_o their_o state_n be_v in_o its_o fall_n and_o christianity_n in_o its_o growth_n but_o though_o they_o be_v now_o divide_v into_o two_o sect_n that_o of_o the_o carraijim_n who_o only_o follow_v the_o holy_a writ_n and_o that_o of_o the_o rabbanim_fw-la who_o adhere_v to_o the_o tradition_n of_o their_o doctor_n there_o be_v yet_o but_o the_o latter_a which_o deserve_v to_o come_v into_o consideration_n the_o number_n of_o the_o former_a be_v altogether_o inconsiderable_a they_o be_v a_o remainder_n of_o the_o sadducee_n which_o be_v hardly_o know_v in_o europe_n whereas_o the_o other_o may_v be_v call_v the_o posterity_n of_o the_o pharisee_n sect._n 4._o though_o we_o design_v only_o to_o insist_v upon_o the_o latter_a yet_o a_o more_o particular_a difference_n may_v be_v observe_v betwixt_o the_o ancient_a jew_n and_o the_o modern_a by_o the_o ancient_a jew_n i_o understand_v here_o those_o that_o live_v in_o the_o time_n of_o our_o saviour_n of_o his_o apostle_n or_o a_o little_a after_o philo_z who_o be_v the_o learn_a and_o wise_a be_v of_o a_o opinion_n not_o far_o from_o that_o of_o plato_n when_o he_o say_v that_o the_o star_n be_v animate_v and_o that_o they_o move_v circular_o by_o their_o own_o intelligence_n ben_n maimon_n be_v in_o that_o point_n of_o his_o sentiment_n of_o which_o he_o have_v make_v a_o abridgement_n in_o these_o word_n all_o the_o star_n and_o celestial_a orb_n have_v a_o soul_n knowledge_n understanding_n and_o a_o last_a life_n know_v he_o by_o who_o word_n the_o universe_n be_v make_v each_o of_o those_o ●_z according_a to_o his_o excellency_n and_o dignity_n praise_n and_o glorify_v his_o author_n follow_v the_o example_n of_o the_o angel_n but_o as_o they_o know_v god_n so_o they_o understand_v what_o they_o be_v themselves_o as_o well_o as_o the_o angel_n who_o however_o be_v above_o they_o their_o knowledge_n be_v inferior_a to_o that_o of_o the_o angel_n and_o superior_a to_o that_o of_o man_n this_o be_v to_o be_v read_v in_o the_o book_n of_o that_o author_n entitle_v of_o the_o ground_n of_o faith_n sect._n 5._o if_o we_o come_v more_o particular_o to_o examine_v their_o opinion_n as_o to_o the_o spirit_n whether_o angel_n or_o human_a soul_n we_o shall_v not_o find_v the_o ancient_n and_o modern_a writer_n agree_v well_o together_o philo_z who_o be_v among_o the_o former_a believe_v that_o the_o air_n be_v full_a of_o spirit_n the_o most_o perfect_a of_o who_o never_o assume_v body_n but_o go_v to_o and_o fro_o ascend_v and_o descend_v from_o heaven_n upon_o earth_n for_o the_o service_n of_o the_o great_a god_n that_o there_o be_v other_o inferior_a in_o dignity_n to_o the_o first_o who_o take_v on_o body_n of_o which_o they_o be_v deprive_v by_o death_n and_o into_o which_o some_o of_o they_o return_v but_o other_o be_v weary_v of_o this_o life_n go_v up_o high_o and_o live_v there_o in_o peace_n but_o there_o be_v other_o the_o most_o pure_a and_o excellent_a of_o all_o who_o have_v a_o sublime_a and_o divine_a understanding_n despise_v terrestrial_a and_o perish_a thing_n be_v the_o minister_n of_o the_o almighty_a and_o as_o the_o ear_n and_o eye_n of_o the_o great_a god_n those_o see_v and_o hear_v everything_o the_o philosopher_n call_v they_o genii_n and_o the_o holy_a write_v name_n they_o most_o proper_o angel_n that_o be_v to_o say_v messengers_z for_o they_o be_v real_o messenger_n who_o carry_v to_o child_n the_o order_n of_o their_o father_n and_o to_o the_o father_n the_o prayer_n of_o his_o child_n wherefore_o it_o be_v say_v of_o they_o that_o they_o ascend_v and_o descend_v this_o be_v contain_v in_o the_o book_n of_o dream_n write_v by_o philo._n sect._n 6._o if_o you_o now_o desire_v to_o hear_v the_o jew_n of_o the_o latter_a time_n and_o their_o opinion_n upon_o the_o nature_n of_o angel_n vorstius_n will_v tell_v you_o most_o true_o in_o his_o annotation_n upon_o the_o ground_n of_o the_o faith_n write_v by_o maimonides_n that_o they_o do_v not_o perfect_o agree_v together_o for_o some_o believe_v that_o those_o spirit_n have_v be_v create_v of_o the_o most_o subtle_a element_n as_o rabbi_n juda_n relate_v it_o in_o his_o book_n entitle_v cusri_n chap._n 4._o sect._n 4._o other_o as_o the_o author_n of_o the_o book_n jezira_n hold_v as_o the_o same_o rabbi_n juda_n assure_v we_o that_o the_o angel_n proceed_v from_o the_o holy_a ghost_n we_o find_v also_o in_o the_o book_n chagiga_n fol._n 14._o that_o by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n administer_a angel_n be_v create_v every_o day_n but_o maimonides_n speak_v of_o his_o own_o more_o wise_o upon_o this_o subject_n and_o general_o upon_o all_o other_o the_o angel_n say_v he_o in_o chap._n 2._o sect._n 4_o have_v a_o essence_n that_o subsist_v without_o matter_n not_o have_v body_n but_o be_v essence_n distinguish_v from_o one_o another_o sect._n 7._o upon_o this_o difference_n of_o the_o angel_n in_o the_o opinion_n of_o the_o jew_n i_o think_v it_o better_a to_o propose_v what_o have_v be_v say_v by_o the_o same_o author_n than_o to_o quote_v any_o other_o because_o there_o be_v none_o among_o they_o that_o may_v be_v compare_v to_o he_o either_o for_o learning_n or_o judgement_n as_o not_o intend_v to_o impute_v to_o they_o more_o foolish_a doctrine_n than_o those_o that_o be_v admit_v by_o their_o most_o authentic_a writer_n thus_o than_o maimonides_n express_v this_o opinion_n when_o the_o prophet_n say_v that_o they_o have_v see_v the_o angel_n as_o a_o fire_n and_o with_o wing_n they_o speak_v after_o the_o manner_n of_o the_o prophet_n and_o by_o a_o simile_n design_v only_o to_o show_v that_o they_o be_v neither_o corporeal_a nor_o heavy_a in_o this_o sense_n it_o be_v that_o god_n himself_o be_v call_v a_o consume_a fire_n viz._n improper_o thus_o likewise_o this_o passage_n must_v be_v understand_v he_o make_v the_o wind_n his_o angel_n or_o as_o it_o be_v in_o some_o translation_n the_o spirit_n for_o the_o hebrew_n word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d ruach_n have_v those_o two_o signification_n of_o spirit_n and_o of_o wind_n and_o therefore_o the_o angel_n be_v material_a be_v essential_o distinguish_v betwixt_o themselves_o as_o by_o degree_n the_o one_o be_v above_o the_o other_o to_o which_o the_o author_n apply_v these_o word_n for_o a_o high_a than_o that_o high_a takes_z
name_n which_o the_o administer_a angel_n see_v say_v among_o themselves_o let_v we_o consult_v together_o how_o we_o shall_v do_v to_o make_v adam_n sin_n against_o his_o creator_n otherwise_o he_o be_v like_a to_o become_v our_o master_n sammael_n who_o be_v a_o great_a prince_n in_o heaven_n she_o have_v be_v before_o mention_v ch._n 12._o s._n 8._o be_v present_a at_o this_o council_n with_o the_o saint_n of_o the_o first_o order_n and_o the_o seraphin_n of_o six_o troop_n sammael_n choose_v some_o of_o the_o twelve_o order_n to_o acco●●●●ny_v he_o and_o come_v down_o below_o to_o visit_v all_o the_o creature_n who_o god_n eternal_o bless_a have_v create_v he_o find_v none_o so_o cunning_a and_o so_o proper_a to_o deceive_v as_o the_o serpent_n the_o author_n come_v afterward_o to_o the_o seduction_n and_o fall_n of_o man_n upon_o which_o he_o tell_v as_o many_o story_n as_o he_o have_v already_o do_v so_o be_v the_o seduction_n of_o man_n the_o cause_n of_o the_o fall_n of_o the_o devil_n afterward_o he_o relate_v how_o god_n punish_v adam_n eve_n and_o the_o serpent_n and_o impose_v on_o each_o of_o they_o his_o proper_a pain_n he_o call_v they_o all_o three_o before_o he_o charge_v by_o his_o sentence_n adam_n with_o nine_o curse_n and_o condemn_v he_o to_o death_n but_o he_o precipitate_v sammael_n and_o his_o whole_a troop_n from_o the_o heaven_n the_o abode_n of_o his_o holiness_n he_o cut_v off_o the_o foot_n of_o the_o serpent_n for_o it_o have_v before_o the_o shape_n of_o a_o camel_n and_o sammael_n ride_v upon_o he_o and_o he_o curse_v it_o above_o all_o other_o beast_n and_o live_a creature_n that_o be_v the_o fall_n of_o the_o devil_n according_a to_o the_o opinion_n of_o the_o jew_n for_o we_o must_v not_o charge_v this_o story_n upon_o eliezer_n alone_o the_o targum_n that_o contain_v the_o most_o ordinary_a and_o receive_v explication_n of_o their_o best_a doctor_n mention_v this_o fable_n in_o several_a place_n sect._n 14._o they_o give_v yet_o another_o original_n to_o the_o daemon_n feign_v he_o to_o be_v issue_v from_o lilis_n that_o be_v say_v manasse_n the_o name_n of_o the_o wife_n of_o the_o devil_n who_o according_a to_o the_o opinion_n of_o some_o have_v be_v the_o wife_n of_o adam_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d lilit_fw-la be_v a_o word_n to_o be_v find_v in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n isa_n 34_o 14._o which_o our_o interpreter_n translate_v satyr_n the_o french_a lutin_n and_o the_o dutch_a duyvell_n but_o we_o must_v hear_v rabbi_n elisha_n who_o in_o his_o thisbi_n have_v set_v up_o the_o whole_a legend_n we_o find_v in_o some_o write_n that_o for_o one_o hundred_o and_o thirty_o year_n during_o which_o adam_n abstain_v from_o his_o wife_n there_o come_v she_o devil_n to_o he_o who_o grow_v big_a with_o child_n and_o bring_v forth_o devil_n spirit_n hobgoblin_n and_o night_n phantasm_n i_o find_v again_o in_o other_o place_n that_o the_o devil_n have_v be_v bring_v forth_o by_o four_o mother_n lilis_n naome_n ogera_n and_o macholas_n we_o likewise_o read_v in_o the_o book_n of_o ben_n syra_n quest_n 60._o that_o nebuchadnezar_n ask_v he_o why_o most_o child_n die_v within_o the_o eight_o day_n of_o their_o birth_n he_o answer_v because_o lilis_n kill_v they_o of_o which_o matter_n there_o be_v more_o large_o treat_v in_o the_o same_o place_n but_o i_o shall_v not_o write_v more_o of_o it_o because_o i_o dont_fw-fr credit_v it_o by_o that_o narration_n may_v be_v see_v how_o gross_a the_o fiction_n of_o the_o jewish_a doctor_n be_v since_o there_o be_v man_n among_o they_o who_o can_v believe_v they_o how_o apt_a soever_o that_o nation_n may_v be_v to_o be_v impose_v upon_o sect._n 15._o but_o as_o if_o those_o four_o she_o devil_n have_v not_o be_v sufficient_a to_o people_n the_o world_n with_o wicked_a spirit_n they_o have_v invent_v a_o three_o sort_n from_o what_o be_v mention_v gen._n 6.2_o that_o the_o son_n of_o god_n see_v the_o daughter_n of_o man_n that_o they_o be_v fair_a take_v for_o wife_n such_o as_o they_o like_v from_o very_o ancient_a time_n the_o jew_n by_o those_o son_n of_o god_n understand_v the_o angel_n wherefore_o josephus_n say_v in_o his_o first_o book_n of_o the_o jewish_a antiquity_n chap._n 4._o that_o several_a angel_n of_o god_n mix_v themselves_o with_o woman_n beget_v a_o very_a insolent_a generation_n he_o even_o know_v the_o name_n of_o those_o angel_n that_o be_v carry_v to_o that_o excess_n of_o lechery_n aza_n and_o azael_n be_v the_o chief_a among_o they_o be_v both_o enamour_a with_o the_o beauty_n of_o naema_n cain_n daughter_n thence_o proceed_v the_o giant_n mention_v in_o the_o same_o place_n of_o the_o holy_a writ_n who_o as_o we_o may_v infer_v from_o that_o narration_n must_v have_v be_v half_a devil_n and_o half_a men._n asmodee_n the_o wicked_a spirit_n of_o sara_n daughter_n to_o raguel_n of_o who_o mention_n be_v make_v in_o the_o book_n of_o tobit_n be_v likewise_o issue_v from_o that_o marriage_n but_o other_o affirm_v he_o to_o be_v sammael_n if_o it_o be_v ask_v how_o spirit_n have_v the_o faculty_n of_o generate_a eliezer_n explain_v that_o difficulty_n in_o his_o 22th_o chapter_n when_o they_o be_v throw_v down_o from_o their_o holy_a abode_n their_o strength_n and_o shape_n become_v like_a to_o that_o of_o men._n sect._n 16._o but_o not_o to_o fill_v up_o this_o book_n with_o tale_n they_o have_v rather_o imagine_v as_o some_o heathen_n have_v do_v chap._n 2._o s._n 12._o that_o those_o wicked_a spirit_n be_v half_a angel_n and_o half_a men._n whereupon_o vorstius_n in_o his_o note_n upon_o rabbi_n eliezer_n relate_v the_o follow_a word_n take_v from_o rabbi_n scheem_n toob_n in_o that_o place_n where_o rabi_n nitron_n speak_v of_o lilis_n the_o power_n of_o the_o devil_n night_n phantasm_n and_o wicked_a spirit_n which_o we_o sometime_o see_v in_o a_o human_a shape_n proceed_v from_o the_o concourse_n of_o that_o chief_a of_o they_o and_o as_o to_o their_o state_n the_o opinion_n of_o the_o learned_a be_v that_o they_o resemble_v man_n as_o much_o as_o they_o do_v angel_n because_o on_o the_o one_o side_n they_o be_v not_o such_o a_o subtle_a substance_n as_o those_o of_o the_o other_o spirit_n and_o on_o the_o other_o they_o be_v not_o compose_v of_o such_o a_o gross_a matter_n as_o that_o of_o men._n if_o we_o desire_v to_o know_v why_o those_o curse_a creature_n be_v call_v by_o the_o jewish_a doctor_n sometime_o spirit_n and_o sometime_o male_a and_o female_a as_o though_o they_o be_v man_n the_o same_o toob_n will_v tell_v we_o in_o his_o 5_o chapter_n as_o vorstius_n relate_v in_o the_o 22th_o chapter_n of_o rabi_n eliezer_n where_o he_o speak_v of_o a_o second_o order_n of_o spirit_n consider_v as_o distinguish_v into_o ten_o order_n from_o that_o order_n proceed_v in_o the_o universe_n two_o sort_n of_o spirit_n of_o error_n or_o satyr_n who_o behave_v themselves_o like_o man_n who_o appear_v to_o they_o in_o their_o dream_n in_o the_o shape_n of_o handsome_a woman_n transform_v themselves_o now_o into_o man_n then_z women_z sect._n 17_o it_o be_v now_o time_n to_o learn_v their_o opinion_n concern_v human_a soul_n at_o least_o if_o they_o understand_v themselves_o distinct_o enough_o to_o inform_v we_o of_o it_o for_o it_o already_o appear_v from_o what_o i_o have_v quote_v out_o of_o philo_n sect._n 12._o that_o the_o most_o learned_a do_v not_o stick_v to_o a_o accurate_a distinction_n betwixt_o angel_n and_o soul_n and_o josephus_n that_o famous_a historian_n almost_o as_o ancient_a as_o that_o other_o author_n say_v in_o his_o seven_o book_n of_o the_o war_n of_o the_o jew_n chap._n 25._o that_o the_o spirit_n call_v daemon_n be_v those_o of_o the_o worst_a of_o man_n who_o fall_v upon_o the_o live_n and_o kill_v they_o if_o not_o hinder_v from_o it_o thence_o it_o appear_v that_o he_o ascribe_v something_o corporeal_a to_o those_o spirit_n so_o much_o the_o more_o that_o he_o fancy_n that_o they_o may_v be_v expel_v by_o the_o root_n baaras_fw-mi or_o by_o some_o other_o former_o show_v by_o solomon_n as_o the_o same_o author_n intimate_v in_o his_o eight_o book_n of_o the_o jewish_a antiquity_n but_o i_o be_o to_o make_v a_o large_a mention_n of_o that_o sort_n of_o enchantment_n in_o the_o follow_a chapter_n sect._n 18._o the_o book_n which_o the_o learned_a hoornbeck_n have_v write_v against_o the_o jew_n contain_v in_o short_a their_o opinion_n as_o to_o the_o nature_n and_o original_a of_o soul_n their_o opinion_n say_v he_o pag._n 319._o be_v that_o the_o soul_n be_v all_o create_v together_o with_o the_o light_n the_o first_o day_n of_o the_o creation_n and_o not_o only_o that_o they_o be_v create_v together_o but_o by_o couple_n the_o soul_n of_o a_o man_n and_o that_o of_o a_o woman_n so_o that_o
tbem_fw-la who_o eager_o addict_v themselves_o to_o magic_n by_o which_o they_o get_v afterward_o into_o great_a reputation_n and_o that_o the_o expound_v of_o dream_n be_v a_o pretence_n they_o make_v use_v of_o to_o commit_v a_o vast_a number_n of_o deceit_n and_o villainy_n we_o see_v continue_v that_o learned_a author_n in_o the_o book_n maarsar_n shemi_n fol._n 45._o col._n 2_o 3._o that_o rabbi_n joseph_n ben_n calpata_n rabbi_n ishmael_n ben._n jose_n rabbi_n lazarus_n and_o akiba_n make_v it_o their_o whole_a business_n many_o of_o their_o expounding_n be_v relate_v in_o the_o place_n i_o have_v quote_v out_o of_o lightfoot_n and_o from_o several_a thing_n contain_v therein_o it_o may_v be_v infer_v that_o they_o instruct_v their_o disciple_n in_o those_o arts._n in_o the_o book_n shabbat_n fol._n 3_o col._n 2._o mention_n be_v make_v of_o a_o phantasm_n that_o appear_v to_o one_o of_o their_o bigot_n whilst_o he_o be_v meditate_v the_o law_n and_o fol._n 8._o col._n 2._o fol._n 14._o col._n 3._o all_o sort_n of_o conjuration_n be_v treat_v of_o some_o to_o cure_v wound_n other_o against_o the_o sting_n of_o serpent_n against_o theft_n and_o even_o against_o enchantment_n this_o i_o have_v collect_v from_o the_o second_o part_n of_o the_o work_n of_o lightfoot_n page_n 147._o where_o many_o other_o thing_n of_o that_o nature_n be_v to_o be_v find_v but_o not_o necessary_a to_o relate_v and_o much_o less_o to_o extract_v out_o of_o the_o own_o book_n of_o the_o jew_n sect._n 3_o however_o it_o will_v not_o be_v beside_o the_o purpose_n to_o add_v what_o the_o same_o lightfoot_n have_v gather_v from_o several_a of_o their_o writing_n especial_o from_o the_o book_n sanhedrin_n concern_v their_o bathkol_n or_o the_o daughter_n of_o the_o voice_n which_o be_v the_o name_n the_o jew_n give_v to_o the_o echo_n pretend_v it_o be_v a_o oracle_n that_o under_o the_o second_o temple_n supply_v the_o want_n of_o the_o urim_n and_o thummim_n with_o which_o the_o first_o temple_n be_v honour_v this_o be_v know_v by_o all_o that_o be_v but_o a_o little_a acquaint_v with_o the_o jewish_a affair_n and_o have_v read_v some_o of_o their_o writing_n but_o here_o be_v proof_n that_o show_v they_o make_v use_v of_o bathkool_n divination_n rabbi_n jochanan_n and_o rabbi_n simeon_n design_v to_o consult_v bathkool_n to_o go_v and_o see_v rabbi_n samuel_n the_o babylonian_a they_o pass_v before_o the_o school_n and_o hear_v a_o boy_n read_v what_o be_v contain_v 1_o sam._n chap._n 25._o verse_n 1._o samuel_n be_v dead_a they_o observe_v that_o and_o find_v that_o the_o samuel_n they_o seek_v be_v dead_a here_o follow_v another_o story_n rabbi_n jonah_n and_o rabbi_n josah_n go_v to_o visit_v rabbi_n acha_n while_o he_o lay_v sick_a they_o say_v let_v we_o hear_v what_o bathkool_n will_v say_v and_o immediate_o they_o hear_v a_o voice_n of_o a_o woman_n that_o say_v to_o her_o neighbour_n the_o candle_n go_v out_o to_o which_o the_o neighbour_n answer_v pray_v dont_fw-fr let_v it_o go_v out_o nor_o extinguish_v the_o light_n of_o israel_n lightfoot_n tom._n 2._o p._n 167._o it_o be_v as_o sure_o that_o those_o word_n proceed_v from_o bathkool_n as_o it_o be_v certain_a that_o elijah_n be_v present_a at_o the_o circumcision_n of_o the_o child_n of_o the_o jew_n as_o it_o be_v common_o believe_v among_o they_o and_o as_o all_o the_o learned_a know_v s_n 4._o but_o beside_o those_o singularity_n we_o may_v take_v notice_n that_o all_o their_o witchcraft_n be_v found_v upon_o two_o ground_n the_o influence_n of_o the_o star_n and_o thy_o apparition_n of_o spirit_n the_o reason_n of_o the_o former_a ground_n be_v that_o tho'_o they_o esteem_v not_o the_o celestial_a light_n to_o be_v god_n yet_o they_o ascribe_v to_o they_o a_o particular_a virtue_n work_v upon_o and_o influence_v human_a action_n as_o well_o external_a as_o internal_a sense_n we_o have_v already_o hear_v philo_n and_o ben._n maimon_n upon_o that_o matter_n it_o be_v very_o usual_a with_o they_o to_o say_v the_o planet_n make_v such_o a_o one_o wise_a or_o rich_a as_o buxtorf_n relate_v it_o in_o his_o lexicon_fw-la talmudicum_fw-la out_o of_o the_o book_n of_o the_o sabbath_n these_o be_v happy_a influence_n or_o constellation_n that_o be_v call_v mazzal-toob_a but_o mazzal-ra_a be_v a_o malignant_a star_n under_o which_o one_o be_v bear_v or_o who_o virtue_n influence_n he_o all_o his_o life_n buxtorf_n say_v again_o upon_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o same_o book_n that_o the_o planet_n of_o the_o day_n of_o one_o birth_n influence_n he_o not_o but_o only_o that_o of_o the_o hour_n and_o even_o we_o find_v in_o that_o book_n which_o be_v the_o genius_n of_o every_o man_n according_a to_o the_o planet_n under_o which_o he_o be_v bear_v he_o who_o be_v bear_v under_o the_o sun_n will_v be_v handsome_a free_a not_o dissemble_v but_o of_o a_o unconstant_a humour_n under_o venus_n he_o will_v be_v rich_a and_o lecherous_a under_o mercury_n skilful_a and_o of_o a_o good_a memory_n under_o the_o moon_n sickly_a and_o unsteadfast_a under_o saturn_n unfortunate_a under_o jupiter_n just_a and_o under_o mars_n happy_a which_o be_v the_o same_o with_o all_o the_o other_o constellation_n in_o the_o mean_a while_o it_o be_v common_o say_v that_o there_o be_v no_o planet_n in_o israel_n because_o all_o the_o jew_n seem_v to_o be_v bear_v under_o one_o planet_n be_v all_o of_o the_o same_o genius_n and_o conduct_n therefore_o we_o must_v conclude_v that_o those_o distinction_n concern_v only_a stranger_n and_o that_o israel_n have_v the_o skill_n of_o foretell_v their_o good_a and_o bad_a fortune_n however_o they_o be_v much_o disturb_v when_o the_o moon_n be_v eclipse_v because_o they_o take_v that_o accident_n as_o a_o ill_a presage_n to_o they_o which_o be_v a_o evident_a proof_n of_o the_o unstedfastness_n of_o the_o jewish_a nation_n sect._n 5._o as_o to_o the_o spirit_n manasse_n ben_n israel_n discover_v the_o true_a ground_n of_o the_o jewish_a divination_n lead_v we_o to_o the_o wicked_a spirit_n say_v that_o some_o of_o they_o be_v skilful_a and_o shrewd_a and_o other_o foolish_a and_o dull_a the_o most_o skilful_a fly_v from_o one_o corner_n of_o the_o world_n to_o the_o other_o sometime_o learn_v what_o be_v to_o happen_v for_o this_o reason_n he_o acknowledge_v page_n 18._o that_o several_a conjure_v up_o those_o spirit_n and_o do_v wonder_n by_o help_n of_o the_o black_a art_n we_o read_v even_o in_o some_o cabbalistical_a book_n as_o in_o pirke_n chalos_n and_o ratsiel_n and_o in_o some_o other_o the_o name_n of_o those_o spirit_n and_o the_o form_n of_o the_o conjuration_n use_v for_o that_o purpose_n there_o be_v also_o to_o be_v find_v all_o the_o presage_n that_o may_v be_v draw_v from_o the_o various_a sort_n of_o apparition_n if_o those_o spirit_n appear_v to_o a_o man_n alone_o they_o forebode_v nothing_o good_a if_o they_o appear_v to_o two_o person_n together_o they_o presage_v nothing_o ill_a but_o it_o never_o happen_v that_o they_o show_v themselves_o to_o three_o in_o a_o company_n sect._n 6._o the_o way_n and_o mean_v they_o use_v for_o their_o witchcraft_n and_o divination_n be_v to_o be_v observe_v in_o the_o ceremony_n of_o their_o feast_n and_o the_o whole_a course_n of_o their_o ordinary_a life_n every_o one_o know_v that_o marriage_n be_v the_o lawful_a way_n to_o beget_v child_n which_o make_v they_o believe_v one_o must_v needs_o know_v how_o to_o preserve_v himself_o in_o that_o occasion_n from_o the_o wicked_a spirit_n there_o be_v none_o but_o have_v read_v the_o book_n of_o tobit_n how_o he_o expel_v the_o devil_n asmodee_fw-mi by_o the_o inspiration_n of_o the_o angel_n raphael_n and_o how_o they_o take_v together_o a_o fish_n which_o as_o some_o suppose_n be_v a_o pike_n as_o to_o the_o heart_n and_o liver_n say_v raphael_n if_o the_o daemon_n or_o wicked_a spirit_n disturb_v any_o person_n whether_o man_n or_o woman_n he_o need_v but_o make_v a_o perfume_n before_o he_o and_o the_o party_n shall_v be_v no_o more_o vex_v chap._n 6._o v._n 7._o when_o he_o be_v marry_v with_o sara_n he_o remember_v the_o word_n of_o raphael_n and_o take_v the_o ash_n of_o the_o perfume_n put_v the_o heart_n and_o the_o liver_n of_o the_o fish_n thereupon_o and_o make_v a_o smoke_n with_o it_o which_o when_o the_o evil_a spirit_n have_v smell_v he_o flee_v into_o the_o utmost_a part_n of_o egypt_n and_o the_o angel_n bind_v he_o there_o chap._n 8._o v._n 23._o sect._n 7._o if_o that_o narration_n be_v esteem_v apocryphal_a by_o the_o protestant_n that_o of_o josephus_n deserve_v not_o a_o better_a name_n when_o in_o the_o second_o chap._n of_o the_o 8_o book_n of_o his_o jewish_a antiquity_n he_o deduce_v the_o original_a of_o magic_n from_o solomon_n and_o lay_v the_o foundation_n of_o it_o upon_o the_o wisdom_n
of_o that_o king_n nay_o he_o assert_v that_o god_n himself_o have_v inspire_v he_o with_o that_o art_n so_o powerful_a against_o demon_n for_o say_v he_o he_o have_v make_v use_n of_o witchcraft_n to_o expel_v disease_n and_o have_v leave_v in_o his_o writing_n form_n of_o conjuration_n by_o which_o the_o devil_n that_o molest_v mankind_n be_v so_o far_o banish_v that_o they_o never_o dare_v come_v back_o again_o and_o that_o sort_n of_o cure_n be_v now_o in_o great_a request_n among_o our_o nation_n it_o consist_v according_a to_o the_o description_n give_v of_o it_o in_o the_o use_n of_o some_o certain_a root_n which_o they_o seal_v up_o and_o put_v under_o the_o nostril_n of_o the_o possess_v at_o the_o same_o time_n they_o utter_v the_o name_n of_o solomon_n and_o the_o word_n of_o his_o conjuration_n and_o so_o be_v the_o devil_n force_v to_o fly_v he_o declare_v to_o have_v be_v a_o eye-witness_n himself_o of_o a_o operation_n of_o this_o nature_n make_v in_o the_o presence_n of_o the_o emperor_n vespasian_n and_o his_o son_n on_o the_o person_n of_o one_o eliezer_n we_o will_v examine_v in_o our_o four_o book_n how_o the_o sight_n of_o josephus_n be_v then_o dispose_v but_o in_o the_o mean_a while_n we_o can_v wish_v he_o have_v explain_v to_o we_o whether_o this_o root_n be_v the_o same_o with_o that_o he_o mention_n in_o the_o 28_o chap._n of_o the_o seven_o book_n of_o the_o jewish_a antiquity_n which_o he_o call_v baaras_n because_o of_o the_o place_n where_o it_o grow_v since_o he_o also_o ascribe_v to_o this_o last_o the_o wonderful_a virtue_n of_o expelling_a demon_n for_o according_a to_o his_o relation_n one_o need_v but_o touch_v the_o possess_v with_o it_o and_o the_o devil_n be_v force_v to_o run_v away_o but_o of_o this_o more_o in_o the_o four_o book_n sect._n 8._o here_o follow_v how_o the_o present_a jew_n be_v molest_v all_o their_o life_n by_o the_o wicked_a spirit_n and_o how_o they_o beware_v of_o they_o when_o a_o child_n come_v into_o the_o world_n the_o terror_n of_o lilis_n come_v with_o he_o to_o seize_v upon_o the_o spirit_n of_o the_o parent_n because_o that_o lilis_n intend_v to_o kill_v the_o boy_n within_z 8_o day_n of_o their_o birth_n and_o the_o girl_n within_o the_o 21th_o the_o remedy_n of_o the_o german_a jew_n to_o preserve_v themselves_o from_o that_o danger_n be_v to_o draw_v circular_a line_n with_o chalk_n or_o charcoles_n upon_o the_o 4_o wall_n of_o the_o chamber_n wherein_o the_o woman_n lie_v and_o to_o write_v upon_o each_o circle_n adam_n eve_n let_v lilis_n be_v go_v they_o also_o write_v upon_o the_o door_n of_o the_o chamber_n the_o name_n of_o the_o three_o angel_n that_o preside_v over_o physic_n senoi_n sansenoi_n and_o saumangelof_o as_o lilis_n herself_o teach_v they_o when_o she_o hope_v to_o drown_v they_o all_o in_o the_o sea_n this_o be_v relate_v by_o elias_n in_o his_o book_n entitle_v thisbi_n to_o which_o he_o give_v no_o great_a credit_n as_o he_o himself_o witness_v i_o can_v omit_v what_o buxtorf_n say_v in_o his_o lexicon_fw-la talmudicum_fw-la concern_v the_o weapon_n wherewith_o they_o arm_v themselves_o against_o phantom_n a_o veil_n spread_v over_o the_o face_n hinder_v the_o phantasm_n from_o know_v he_o that_o be_v fright_v but_o if_o god_n judge_n that_o he_o deserve_v to_o be_v terrify_v for_o his_o sin_n he_o cause_v the_o vizard_n to_o fall_v down_o that_o the_o ghost_n may_v see_v and_o bite_v he_o sect._n 9_o but_o what_o terror_n soever_o the_o devil_n cause_v to_o they_o they_o nevertheless_o believe_v that_o if_o they_o take_v their_o opportunity_n they_o may_v prevent_v his_o endeavour_n without_o trouble_n to_o this_o the_o choice_n of_o day_n be_v of_o great_a use_n and_o they_o have_v so_o great_a a_o regard_n for_o they_o that_o they_o do_v no_o long_o deserve_v the_o reproach_n that_o be_v cast_v upon_o they_o of_o not_o understand_v the_o sign_n of_o time_n the_o same_o buxtorf_n in_o his_o school_n of_o the_o jew_n will_v supply_v we_o with_o a_o specimen_fw-la of_o that_o custom_n at_o the_o great_a day_n of_o propitiation_n they_o appease_v sammael_n with_o a_o present_a for_o on_o that_o only_a day_n in_o the_o whole_a year_n he_o be_v allow_v by_o a_o compact_n with_o god_n to_o accuse_v israel_n of_o their_o transgression_n beside_o they_o believe_v themselves_o so_o cunning_a as_o to_o cheat_v the_o devil_n the_o first_o mean_v they_o use_v for_o that_o purpose_n be_v to_o blow_v upon_o the_o corn_n withal_o their_o strength_n from_o morning_n to_o night_n fancy_v to_o make_v sammael_n forget_v the_o quality_n of_o it_o by_o the_o fright_n they_o cast_v upon_o he_o the_o first_o day_n of_o the_o year_n be_v also_o fit_a to_o put_v another_o cheat_n upon_o he_o for_o as_o on_o that_o day_n god_n sit_v in_o judgement_n for_o the_o examination_n of_o sin_n they_o endeavour_v to_o hinder_v their_o enemy_n from_o bring_v his_o accusation_n against_o they_o by_o conceal_v from_o he_o the_o date_n of_o the_o day_n the_o subtlety_n they_o use_v in_o that_o occasion_n be_v that_o they_o forbear_v to_o read_v either_o the_o begin_n or_o the_o end_n of_o the_o law_n as_o sammael_n suppose_v that_o they_o shall_v do_v that_o day_n and_o thus_o they_o never_o fail_v to_o catch_v he_o they_o also_o abstain_v as_o much_o as_o they_o can_v on_o the_o 17_o day_n of_o the_o month_n tammus_n that_o answer_v to_o our_o june_n and_o the_o 9th_o of_o the_o follow_a month_n on_o which_o fall_v their_o second_o fast_n to_o go_v from_o home_n and_o especial_o avoid_v to_o make_v any_o journey_n of_o 4_o or_o 5_o mile_n or_o to_o appear_v in_o a_o court_n of_o justice_n because_o that_o time_n be_v the_o reign_n of_o a_o wicked_a spirit_n call_v ketelmeriri_fw-la bitter_a destruction_n a_o name_n draw_v from_o deut._n chap._n 32._o v._n 24._o where_o moses_n however_o speak_v of_o quite_o other_o matter_n sect._n 10._o the_o cabbala_n chief_o use_v such_o witchcraft_n as_o be_v make_v by_o number_n and_o letter_n and_o be_v in_o great_a request_n among_o the_o jew_n it_o even_o teach_v to_o apply_v to_o it_o the_o sacred_a word_n of_o god_n and_o withal_o some_o sentence_n and_o discourse_n or_o only_o some_o proper_a word_n and_o particular_a name_n to_o which_o the_o jew_n ascribe_v a_o great_a virtue_n whether_o they_o attribute_v it_o to_o the_o power_n of_o the_o apparition_n of_o absent_a body_n or_o of_o incorporeal_a substance_n or_o whether_o they_o presume_v to_o effect_v by_o that_o mean_n strange_a and_o wonderful_a thing_n malka_n scheva_n or_o the_o queen_n of_o sheba_n that_o go_v to_o visit_v king_n solomon_n in_o his_o glory_n have_v be_v often_o conjure_v up_o as_o they_o fancy_n and_o have_v appear_v to_o the_o superstitious_a in_o short_a as_o to_o what_o concern_v the_o other_o extraordinary_a effect_n which_o they_o boast_v to_o produce_v they_o be_v hold_v for_o great_a forcerer_n even_o by_o christian_n over_o credulous_a in_o this_o point_n for_o there_o be_v germane_a who_o look_v upon_o they_o as_o man_n that_o can_v stop_v conflagration_n and_o quench_v fire_n by_o throw_v upon_o it_o some_o bewitched_a thing_n that_o can_v draw_v two_o or_o several_a sort_n of_o wine_n out_o of_o the_o same_o vessel_n and_o be_v capable_a of_o produce_v many_o other_o wonder_n sect._n 11._o to_o speak_v of_o the_o other_o use_n they_o make_v of_o name_n in_o witchcraft_n it_o must_v be_v grant_v that_o they_o make_v no_o more_o difficulty_n to_o mix_v the_o name_n of_o god_n with_o it_o than_o that_o of_o the_o devil_n the_o famous_a name_n of_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o which_o we_o use_v to_o read_v jehovah_n when_o punctuate_v be_v multiply_v by_o their_o doctor_n by_o 12_o 42_o and_o the_o 72_o letter_n which_o they_o dispose_v and_o make_v word_n of_o they_o and_o apply_v they_o to_o witchcraft_n for_o that_o reason_n they_o call_v it_o shem_n hamphorash_n a_o name_n explain_v or_o divide_v they_o believe_v it_o to_o have_v a_o great_a virtue_n by_o he_o moses_n kill_v the_o egyptian_a by_o he_o israel_n be_v preserve_v from_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o destroy_a angel_n in_o the_o wilderness_n and_o by_o he_o jesus_n christ_n expel_v wicked_a spirit_n thus_o they_o blaspheme_v the_o second_o person_n of_o the_o holy_a trinity_n not_o be_v able_a to_o deny_v his_o power_n it_o be_v easy_a to_o be_v inform_v of_o all_o these_o thing_n in_o their_o own_o writing_n and_o by_o their_o own_o consent_n the_o name_n of_o the_o devil_n be_v likewise_o of_o much_o force_n to_o his_o great_a loss_n and_o sorrow_n that_o force_n proceed_v from_o the_o 4_o hebrew_n letter_n that_o compose_v this_o name_n with_o the_o article_n perfix_v to_o it_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d hassatan_n that_o make_v up_o just_a
the_o number_n of_o 364_o that_o be_v of_o all_o the_o day_n of_o the_o year_n but_o one_o now_o the_o jew_n pretend_v that_o by_o reason_n of_o the_o virtue_n of_o that_o number_n 364_o include_v in_o the_o name_n of_o hassatan_n he_o be_v deprive_v of_o the_o right_n of_o accuse_v they_o during_o a_o like_a number_n of_o day_n in_o the_o year_n and_o therefore_o he_o have_v but_o one_o remain_v in_o which_o he_o may_v do_v it_o so_o that_o if_o he_o chance_v to_o neglect_v that_o day_n or_o to_o be_v then_o deceive_v or_o puzzle_v he_o may_v well_o be_v sorrowful_a and_o the_o jew_n very_o glad_a all_o this_o be_v ground_v upon_o the_o passage_n of_o zacharia_n chap._n 3._o v._n 2_o the_o lord_n rebuke_v thou_o o_o satan_n sect._n 12._o they_o also_o pretend_v to_o find_v a_o great_a virtue_n in_o the_o reckon_n of_o letter_n and_o their_o disposition_n into_o several_a different_a order_n they_o write_v on_o the_o forepart_n of_o house_n and_o the_o wall_n of_o chamber_n some_o strange_a character_n of_o no_o less_o extraordinary_a name_n which_o they_o use_v to_o give_v to_o those_o angel_n that_o be_v establish_v over_o the_o plague_n suppose_v by_o that_o mean_n to_o be_v sufficient_o secure_a from_o the_o burn_a dart_n of_o that_o consume_a scourge_n the_o word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d diriroon_n be_v likewise_o a_o infallible_a preservative_n against_o the_o pestilence_n when_o it_o be_v write_v 22_o or_o 23_o time_n that_o be_v as_o many_o time_n as_o there_o be_v letter_n in_o their_o alphabet_n of_o which_o they_o put_v one_o every_o time_n before_o that_o word_n begin_v with_o the_o first_o letter_n and_o end_v with_o the_o last_o they_o have_v likewise_o excellent_a remedy_n against_o ague_n the_o word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o be_v make_v up_o of_o six_o letter_n be_v write_v 6_o time_n in_o as_o many_o different_a file_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d leave_v out_o a_o letter_n of_o every_o file_n on_o the_o left_a side_n be_v in_o their_o opinion_n a_o excellent_a remedy_n against_o the_o quartan_a ague_n the_o stumble_a block_n of_o the_o physician_n by_o this_o any_o one_o may_v perceive_v how_o great_a virtue_n the_o jew_n ascribe_v to_o letter_n character_n and_o name_n here_o you_o have_v another_o mystery_n teach_v in_o the_o book_n aroda_n zara_n it_o be_v dangerous_a to_o drink_v at_o night_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d why_o because_o that_o make_v people_n blind_a but_o if_o one_o be_v dry_a and_o he_o drink_v what_o then_o here_o be_v the_o remedy_n the_o hebrew_n word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d shebriri_fw-la that_o be_v lose_v sight_n or_o sudden_a blindness_n be_v write_v as_o it_o be_v here_o in_o the_o margin_n and_o hang_v about_o the_o neck_n cause_n the_o blindness_n to_o go_v off_o as_o much_o as_o we_o see_v decrease_v the_o first_o letter_n of_o this_o word_n until_o they_o be_v altogether_o vanish_v and_o the_o blindness_n go_v those_o instruction_n be_v to_o be_v find_v in_o the_o lexicon_fw-la talmudicum_fw-la of_o buxtorf_n sect._n 13._o by_o this_o short_a specimen_fw-la of_o their_o witchcraft_n may_v be_v see_v the_o relation_n that_o there_o be_v betwixt_o the_o practice_n and_o doctrine_n of_o their_o rabbin_n contain_v in_o the_o foregoing_a chapter_n from_o which_o doubtless_o those_o practice_n take_v their_o original_a first_o their_o opinion_n of_o the_o materiality_n as_o i_o may_v say_v of_o good_a and_o bad_a spirit_n chap._n 12._o sect._n 8.10_o 14_o 15._o be_v the_o cause_n that_o they_o ascribe_v to_o they_o external_a and_o visible_a shape_n with_o effect_n of_o the_o same_o nature_n as_o they_o have_v be_v describe_v sect._n 6.8_o for_o material_a cause_n act_v material_o whereas_o spiritual_a thing_n be_v for_o those_o that_o be_v spiritual_a 1_o cor._n 2.13_o second_o it_o be_v no_o hard_a matter_n that_o the_o st_o a●ge_a thought_n they_o have_v of_o sammael_n prince_n of_o the_o devil_n and_o of_o lilis_n his_o mother_n according_a to_o some_o chap._n 12._o sect._n 13_o 14_o shall_v carry_v they_o to_o practice_v conjuration_n by_o which_o they_o hope_v to_o put_v mother_n and_o son_n to_o flight_n or_o at_o least_o to_o turn_v they_o off_o sect._n 7_o 8_o 9_o whoever_o be_v so_o credulous_a in_o that_o point_n be_v very_o apt_a to_o mistake_v in_o all_o other_o three_o their_o great_a and_o general_a esteem_n for_o the_o cabbala_n that_o ascribe_v so_o much_o power_n to_o letter_n name_n and_o number_n be_v the_o original_n of_o all_o the_o sort_n of_o witchcraft_n that_o be_v perform_v with_o letter_n number_n and_o character_n sect._n 10_o 11_o 12._o and_o it_o be_v no_o wonder_n that_o a_o nation_n who_o have_v lose_v the_o vivify_a spirit_n of_o the_o letter_n of_o the_o holy_a writ_n shall_v now_o so_o curious_o and_o with_o so_o much_o trouble_n seek_v the_o help_n of_o those_o letter_n destitute_a of_o the_o spirit_n of_o life_n four_o it_o must_v be_v observe_v that_o be_v ancient_o use_v to_o prophecy_n vision_n vrim_fw-he and_o thummim_n they_o now_o bethink_v themselves_o of_o the_o empty_a sound_n of_o bathcole_n and_o the_o influence_n of_o the_o star_n to_o supply_v the_o want_n of_o the_o advantage_n they_o have_v lose_v sect._n 14._o when_o we_o recollect_v all_o those_o thing_n we_o easy_o perceive_v that_o tho'_o the_o jew_n be_v not_o partaker_n of_o the_o pagan_n idolatry_n yet_o they_o have_v a_o near_a relation_n to_o they_o as_o to_o the_o opinion_n and_o custom_n they_o have_v not_o draw_v from_o the_o holy_a scripture_n nay_o they_o go_v far_o than_o the_o heathen_n and_o be_v in_o a_o more_o diametrical_a opposition_n to_o the_o principle_n of_o their_o own_o doctrine_n than_o the_o heathen_n with_o those_o of_o their_o religion_n for_o the_o jew_n conceive_v plain_o than_o they_o do_v that_o there_o be_v but_o one_o creator_n and_o director_n of_o all_o sufficient_a to_o himself_o and_o have_v such_o a_o strong_a prejudice_n against_o all_o the_o god_n invent_v by_o man_n and_o against_o whatever_o have_v any_o nearness_n to_o idolatry_n it_o be_v not_o easy_a to_o forgive_v they_o their_o dependency_n upon_o the_o star_n their_o fear_n of_o the_o great_a devil_n sammael_n nor_o their_o faith_n for_o the_o virtue_n of_o word_n letter_n character_n and_o number_n since_o the_o heathen_n be_v obnoxious_a to_o those_o fault_n only_o because_o they_o have_v not_o a_o sufficient_a knowledge_n of_o the_o supreme_a deity_n and_o do_v not_o rely_v so_o much_o upon_o he_o as_o they_o ought_v to_o have_v do_v whereas_o they_o trust_v too_o much_o upon_o the_o creature_n which_o they_o have_v deify_v themselves_o however_o our_o amazement_n will_v diminish_v if_o we_o observe_v that_o all_o these_o doctrine_n have_v be_v draw_v from_o paganism_n and_o have_v be_v receive_v among_o they_o only_o by_o a_o effect_n of_o the_o natural_a inclination_n and_o eagerness_n of_o that_o people_n for_o such_o fable_n and_o invention_n without_o consider_v whether_o or_o no_o they_o be_v agreeable_a to_o the_o rule_n of_o the_o law_n but_o the_o utmost_a blindness_n be_v to_o persist_v in_o they_o to_o this_o very_a day_n without_o reflect_v upon_o the_o state_n in_o which_o the_o divine_a justice_n have_v put_v they_o by_o a_o entire_a destruction_n of_o their_o commonwealth_n and_o scatter_v of_o their_o nation_n among_o the_o heathen_n in_o the_o mean_a while_o i_o desire_v the_o reader_n to_o observe_v that_o hitherto_o we_o have_v meet_v with_o nothing_o of_o whatever_o be_v call_v witchcraft_n phantasm_n or_o diabolical_a apparition_n but_o it_o draw_v its_o original_a from_o heathenism_n chap._n fourteen_o that_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o spirit_n and_o the_o exercise_n of_o magic_n be_v also_o in_o request_n among_o the_o mahometan_n sect._n 1_o we_o can_v say_v many_o thing_n with_o great_a certainty_n concern_v the_o mahometan_n upon_o the_o matter_n in_o hand_n for_o we_o must_v learn_v it_o either_o in_o the_o alcoran_n that_o be_v the_o law_n of_o mahomet_n or_o from_o the_o precept_n of_o their_o doctor_n which_o very_o much_o differ_v from_o the_o law_n as_o to_o the_o alcoran_n i_o will_v not_o trust_v to_o any_o but_o myself_o and_o therefore_o have_v read_v it_o sheet_n by_o sheet_n from_o the_o begin_n to_o the_o end_n but_o can_v not_o gather_v any_o particular_n relate_v to_o our_o subject_n except_o that_o little_a which_o i_o shall_v mention_v hereafter_o beside_o there_o be_v come_v to_o my_o hand_n but_o very_o few_o writing_n of_o the_o mahometan_n yet_o i_o have_v read_v some_o very_a credible_a christian_a author_n that_o treat_v of_o their_o belief_n who_o i_o shall_v presume_v to_o make_v use_n of_o because_o every_o one_o know_v that_o during_o their_o abode_n among_o those_o nation_n they_o have_v examine_v very_o impartial_o and_o narrow_o such_o
as_o he_o believe_v particular_o happen_v some_o certain_a night_n chap_n 96._o pag._n 284._o the_o angel_n descend_v at_o night_n upon_o earth_n by_o the_o leave_n of_o their_o lord_n and_o visit_v the_o true_a faithful_a till_o the_o break_n of_o the_o day_n chap._n 12._o pag._n 290._o they_o will_v visit_v the_o faithful_a in_o the_o garden_n of_o eden_n they_o will_v salute_v they_o and_o say_v here_o be_v the_o reward_n of_o their_o perseverance_n here_o be_v the_o eternal_a grace_n sect._n 7._o as_o he_o hold_v that_o the_o angel_n be_v always_o ready_a to_o serve_v god_n on_o behalf_n of_o the_o faithful_a so_o he_o believe_v they_o no_o less_o forward_o in_o perform_v his_o order_n against_o the_o impious_a when_o say_v he_o chap._n 5._o pag._n 155._o the_o wicked_a be_v at_o the_o point_n of_o death_n the_o angel_n stretch_v out_o their_o hand_n to_o seize_v upon_o their_o soul_n and_o further_o p._n 172._o the_o angel_n of_o death_n shall_v kill_v those_o that_o blaspheme_v god_n and_o his_o commandment_n chap._n 7._o pag._n 203_o 204._o thou_o have_v see_v that_o the_o angel_n have_v put_v to_o death_n the_o unfaithful_a and_o strike_v they_o before_z and_o behind_o a_o great_a power_n for_o the_o execute_n of_o god_n judgement_n be_v ascribe_v to_o they_o for_o a_o angel_n be_v sufficient_a to_o destroy_v all_o the_o inhabitant_n of_o the_o world_n as_o levinius_fw-la varnerius_fw-la quote_v it_o out_o of_o a_o turkish_a book_n sect._n 8._o he_o forget_v not_o the_o evil_n cause_v by_o the_o devil_n for_o the_o seduce_a of_o man._n the_o first_o be_v his_o have_v they_o banish_v from_o paradise_n chap._n 1._o pag._n 7._o he_o cause_v adam_n and_o his_o wife_n to_o sin_n and_o to_o fall_v from_o the_o grace_n in_o which_o they_o be_v chap._n 2._o pag._n 8._o god_n advertise_v mahomet_n that_o the_o devil_n will_v make_v h●m_o afraid_a of_o the_o unfaithful_a pag._n 150._o the_o devil_n will_v make_v they_o forget_v my_o commandment_n pag._n 160._o think_v upon_o the_o day_n in_o which_o i_o shall_v gather_v all_o the_o people_n and_o say_v to_o the_o devil_n o_o thou_o prince_n of_o the_o devil_n why_o have_v thou_o rebel_v against_o i_o chap._n 56._o pag._n 608._o for_o the_o devil_n have_v puff_v up_o man_n and_o make_v ●im_a revolt_n from_o the_o commandment_n of_o god_n he_o seem_v even_o to_o believe_v that_o the_o malice_n of_o the_o devil_n extend_v as_o far_o as_o the_o star_n with_o which_o he_o say_v god_n have_v adorn_v the_o heaven_n and_o which_o he_o preserve_v against_o the_o attempt_n of_o the_o devil_n chap._n 40._o pag._n 534._o sect._n 9_o such_o be_v his_o opinion_n as_o to_o the_o angel_n in_o general_a but_o as_o to_o their_o particular_a ministry_n thevenot_n relate_v that_o the_o turk_n acknowledge_v guardian_n angel_n but_o in_o far_o great_a number_n than_o we_o do_v for_z say_v they_o god_n have_v ordain_v 70_o angel_n for_o a_o invisible_a guard_n to_o each_o musulman_n and_o there_o happen_v nothing_o to_o any_o person_n but_o they_o attribute_v it_o to_o they_o each_o have_v his_o particular_a office_n one_o watch_n over_o one_o member_n and_o the_o other_a over_o another_o one_o be_v so_o subservient_fw-fr in_o this_o and_o the_o other_o in_o that_o affair_n among_o all_o those_o angel_n there_o be_v two_o who_o preside_v over_o all_o the_o rest_n sit_v one_o on_o the_o right_n and_o the_o other_a on_o the_o left_a hand_n and_o be_v call_v kerim_n kiatib_n that_o be_v to_o say_v merciful_a writer_n that_o on_o the_o right_a hand_n keep_v account_n of_o the_o good_a action_n and_o that_o on_o the_o left_a of_o the_o bad_a they_o be_v so_o merciful_a that_o they_o spare_v he_o if_o he_o commit_v any_o sin_n before_o he_o fall_v asleep_a hope_v he_o shall_v repent_v if_o not_o they_o set_v it_o down_o but_o if_o he_o repent_v they_o write_v estig_fw-mi fourillah_o god_n forgive_v they_o accompany_v he_o every_o where_o unless_o when_o he_o go_v to_o the_o necessary_a house_n whither_o they_o let_v he_o go_v alone_o wait_v for_o he_o at_o the_o door_n where_o they_o again_o take_v possession_n of_o he_o for_o that_o reason_n when_o the_o turk_n go_v to_o that_o place_n they_o go_v in_o with_o the_o left_a foot_n and_o when_o they_o come_v out_o they_o put_v the_o right_a foot_n foremost_a that_o the_o angel_n who_o set_v down_o their_o good_a work_n shall_v seize_v first_o upon_o they_o mahomet_n himself_o confirm_v that_o fable_n say_v chap._n 52._o pag._n 594._o think_v o_o man_n on_o the_o day_n when_o thou_o shall_v see_v near_o thou_o thy_o good_a angel_n on_o thy_o right_a hand_n and_o thy_o bad_a angel_n on_o thy_o left_a who_o have_v note_v and_o write_v whatever_o thou_o have_v do_v sect._n 10._o it_o be_v observable_a that_o this_o fable_n have_v its_o original_a from_o the_o immortality_n of_o the_o soul_n and_o the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o dead_a which_o the_o turk_n believe_v and_o be_v plain_o express_v in_o the_o forego_n word_n and_o elsewhere_o as_o chap._n 12._o pag._n 280._o the_o faithful_a shall_v go_v into_o the_o garden_n of_o eden_n but_o to_o the_o unfaithful_a he_o say_v pag._n 288._o hell_n be_v the_o place_n to_o which_o you_o be_v destine_v chap._n 52._o pag._n 594._o god_n take_v up_o the_o soul_n of_o man_n as_o he_o think_v fit_a to_o send_v she_o into_o one_o of_o those_o place_n but_o first_o she_o return_v into_o the_o body_n after_o its_o bury_n to_o undergo_v the_o strict_a examination_n of_o two_o frightful_a angel_n munquir_n and_o guauquir_n the_o fable_n which_o thevenot_n relate_v upon_o their_o account_n and_o that_o of_o the_o beast_n be_v so_o gross_a that_o i_o shall_v be_v ashamed_a to_o recite_v it_o at_o large_a sect._n 11._o in_o the_o mean_a while_o it_o will_v not_o be_v unserviceable_a to_o our_o subject_n to_o give_v a_o more_o particular_a instruction_n of_o their_o belief_n upon_o the_o state_n of_o the_o dead_a i_o will_v not_o here_o speak_v of_o their_o carnal_a paradise_n because_o i_o treat_v not_o of_o all_o the_o point_n of_o the_o mahometan_a religion_n but_o only_o of_o what_o concern_v the_o the_o spirit_n they_o acknowledge_v that_o there_o be_v appoint_v two_o very_o different_a place_n one_o for_o the_o damn_a and_o the_o other_o for_o the_o save_v that_o be_v to_o say_v there_o be_v man_n who_o have_v do_v so_o many_o good_a work_n that_o at_o the_o very_a hour_n they_o expire_v they_o be_v admit_v into_o the_o happiness_n of_o paradise_n but_o there_o be_v other_o who_o have_v not_o a_o sufficient_a faith_n be_v subject_v to_o i_o pain_n for_o their_o sin_n until_o they_o be_v all_o expiate_v after_o which_o they_o enjoy_v in_o paradise_n the_o same_o felicity_n with_o the_o other_o that_o be_v go_v in_o first_o but_o as_o to_o the_o unfaithful_a and_o wicked_a they_o go_v to_o burn_v forever_o in_o hell_n where_o there_o body_n be_v as_o often_o repair_v by_o god_n as_o they_o be_v reduce_v to_o ash_n that_o their_o torment_n may_v be_v eternal_a that_o be_v the_o substance_n of_o what_o thevenot_n write_v chap._n 20_o and_o 31_o of_o his_o journey_n and_o ricaut_n say_v almost_o the_o same_o thing_n chap._n 2.6_o and_o 12._o sect._n 12._o the_o transmigration_n of_o soul_n from_o one_o body_n into_o another_o not_o only_o of_o human_a soul_n but_o likewise_o of_o those_o of_o beast_n be_v also_o believe_v by_o some_o mahometan_n ricaut_n testify_v book_n 2._o ch._n 12._o that_o one_o of_o their_o sect_n call_v munasichi_n hold_v that_o opinion_n and_o take_v occasion_n from_o thence_o to_o relate_v how_o one_o roboroski_n a_o polander_n be_v deal_v with_o by_o a_o drugist_n that_o be_v angry_a with_o he_o because_o he_o have_v kick_v his_o dog_n for_o they_o believe_v that_o the_o soul_n of_o man_n after_o death_n enter_v into_o the_o body_n of_o such_o beast_n with_o which_o the_o nature_n and_o temper_n of_o the_o body_n that_o be_v animate_v by_o those_o soul_n have_v most_o relation_n that_o the_o soul_n of_o a_o glutton_n pass_v into_o the_o body_n of_o a_o hog_n that_o of_o a_o lecherous_a into_o that_o of_o a_o he-goat_n that_o of_o a_o generous_a person_n be_v destine_v to_o animate_v a_o horse_n and_o that_o of_o a_o watchful_a man_n to_o quicken_v a_o dog_n to_o this_o he_o add_v several_a circumstance_n which_o the_o curious_a may_v see_v in_o his_o own_o book_n he_o likewise_o assert_n that_o the_o sect_n eschrakin_n that_o be_v illuminate_v be_v likewise_o pythagorean_n but_o that_o it_o hold_v not_o much_o of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o alcoran_n tho'_o most_o of_o its_o follower_n be_v the_o schick_n or_o the_o preacher_n and_o chief_a doctor_n of_o the_o turk_n they_o have_v more_o rational_a opinion_n than_o the_o other_o concern_v the_o immateriality_n of_o spirit_n
other_o bad_a the_o author_n of_o all_o evil_a and_o the_o prince_n of_o darkness_n that_o the_o first_o as_o they_o say_v be_v the_o god_n that_o have_v form_v all_o thing_n and_o that_o the_o other_o be_v hyle_n that_o be_v the_o matter_n from_o which_o all_o thing_n have_v be_v form_v and_o which_o be_v esteem_v by_o they_o to_o be_v the_o devil_n some_o distinguish_v the_o devil_n from_o the_o prince_n of_o darkness_n and_o translate_v not_o as_o we_o do_v the_o last_o word_n of_o the_o 44th_o v._o of_o the_o 8_o ch._n of_o st._n john_n he_o be_v the_o father_n of_o lie_n but_o his_o father_n be_v a_o lie_n namely_o the_o father_n of_o the_o devil_n second_o as_o to_o the_o good_a god_n they_o say_v that_o his_o essence_n be_v disperse_v as_o by_o portion_n through_o all_o the_o creature_n and_o inherent_a to_o they_o which_o they_o explain_v by_o many_o wonderful_a commentary_n this_o be_v what_o they_o think_v of_o god_n and_o the_o devil_n in_o relation_n to_o their_o essence_n and_o existence_n what_o follow_v concern_v their_o operation_n sect._n 4._o three_o the_o people_n of_o darkness_n former_o war_v with_o the_o people_n of_o light_n the_o good_a god_n go_v himself_o to_o attack_v the_o prince_n of_o darkness_n by_o some_o certain_a principal_a spirit_n which_o he_o have_v produce_v of_o his_o own_o essence_n who_o however_o be_v too_o weak_a be_v take_v prisoner_n but_o christ_n come_v to_o repair_v that_o disorder_n have_v be_v beget_v by_o some_o certain_a first_o man_n who_o have_v be_v the_o promoter_n of_o this_o war_n and_o have_v begin_v it_o four_o that_o in_o the_o mean_a while_n christ_n himself_o be_v the_o serpent_n that_o seduce_v adam_n and_o eve_n five_o that_o christ_n be_v now_o fix_v among_o the_o star_n especial_o in_o the_o luminous_a globe_n of_o the_o sun_n in_o which_o sense_n they_o explain_v his_o ascension_n to_o heaven_n sect._n 5._o six_o they_o believe_v the_o metempsychosis_n in_o this_o manner_n that_o the_o soul_n shall_v pass_v into_o the_o body_n of_o such_o a_o kind_n of_o live_a creature_n as_o they_o have_v most_o love_v or_o abuse_v during_o their_o life_n he_o that_o have_v kill_v a_o mouse_n or_o a_o fly_n shall_v pass_v in_o punishment_n into_o the_o body_n of_o a_o mouse_n or_o a_o fly_n the_o state_n in_o which_o he_o shall_v be_v put_v after_o death_n shall_v likewise_o be_v oppose_v to_o that_o in_o which_o he_o be_v during_o his_o life_n he_o that_o be_v rich_a shall_v be_v poor_a and_o he_o that_o be_v poor_a shall_v be_v rich_a seven_o they_o also_o give_v two_o soul_n to_o every_o man_n one_o of_o which_o be_v always_o contrary_a to_o the_o other_o but_o enough_o of_o their_o doctrine_n we_o leave_v the_o rest_n to_o danaeus_n who_o ascribe_v to_o they_o 21_o in_o all_o because_o what_o he_o and_o other_o author_n say_v belong_v not_o to_o our_o subject_n sect._n 6._o however_o i_o be_o not_o apt_a to_o assert_v that_o they_o have_v believe_v and_o teach_v such_o gross_a doctrine_n as_o be_v impute_v to_o they_o and_o have_v be_v now_o relate_v for_o suppose_v the_o common_a opinion_n concern_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o manichee_n that_o they_o be_v chief_o extract_v from_o the_o philosophy_n of_o the_o persian_n since_o manes_n their_o first_o author_n be_v undoubted_o a_o persian_a and_o that_o they_o be_v strange_o mingle_v with_o the_o christian_a divinity_n it_o be_v unreasonable_a to_o have_v the_o same_o opinion_n of_o that_o people_n that_o we_o have_v of_o other_o nation_n who_o never_o cultivate_v the_o study_n of_o nature_n and_o human_a learning_n such_o as_o those_o we_o have_v meet_v with_o in_o the_o northern_a part_n of_o africa_n and_o the_o southern_a of_o america_n it_o may_v well_o be_v that_o the_o manichee_n ascribe_v to_o the_o whole_a universe_n a_o principle_n like_o that_o which_o be_v observe_v in_o its_o part_n viz._n the_o active_a cause_n and_o the_o matter_n which_o aristotle_n establish_v to_o be_v eternal_a as_o well_o as_o the_o world_n and_o that_o afterward_o matter_n consider_v as_o insensible_a by_o a_o misinterpretation_n of_o the_o word_n of_o moses_n that_o spread_v in_o the_o beginning_n darkness_n over_o the_o abyss_n and_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n move_v over_o it_o shall_v have_v produce_v those_o monstrous_a thought_n of_o which_o we_o have_v give_v some_o instance_n sect._n 7._o suppose_v they_o have_v establish_v two_o principal_a cause_n one_o of_o good_a and_o the_o other_o of_o evil_n but_o yet_o so_o as_o that_o the_o first_o be_v contestable_o superior_a to_o the_o second_o as_o much_o as_o light_n be_v above_o darkness_n and_o the_o workman_n above_o the_o matter_n he_o work_v upon_o it_o be_v probable_a that_o they_o have_v a_o idea_n of_o god_n as_o a_o soul_n infuse_v through_o the_o whole_a universe_n that_o consider_v by_o they_o as_o the_o body_n in_o which_o that_o first_o cause_n continual_o operate_v and_o as_o the_o contrary_a motion_n of_o corporeal_a passion_n rise_v against_o the_o empire_n of_o reason_n that_o ought_v to_o govern_v they_o so_o they_o may_v believe_v that_o the_o animal_n spirit_n proceed_v from_o matter_n perpetual_o rebel_v against_o god_n the_o fountain_n of_o all_o reason_n whence_o it_o will_v follow_v that_o god_n shall_v not_o be_v more_o absolute_a master_n of_o the_o universe_n than_o man_n be_v of_o his_o body_n thence_o have_v proceed_v that_o idea_n of_o two_o different_a god_n one_o good_a and_o the_o other_o bad_a the_o latter_a be_v still_o inferior_a to_o the_o former_a who_o be_v indeed_o the_o workman_n but_o have_v not_o a_o arbitrary_a government_n there_o be_v a_o power_n in_o the_o world_n so_o great_a that_o it_o be_v able_a to_o resist_v he_o sect._n 8._o but_o whether_o i_o have_v make_v a_o just_a conjecture_n or_o whether_o the_o manichee_n have_v other_o opinion_n than_o those_o i_o imagine_v it_o seem_v nevertheless_o that_o i_o may_v reasonable_a suppose_v it_o upon_o this_o foundation_n that_o no_o opinion_n so_o gross_a as_o those_o that_o be_v ascribe_v to_o they_o not_o only_o be_v not_o admit_v but_o not_o so_o much_o as_o move_v or_o propound_v as_o we_o shall_v see_v very_o soon_o in_o the_o series_n of_o this_o work_n because_o the_o principal_a point_n of_o those_o sort_n of_o belief_n with_o their_o dependency_n have_v a_o great_a relation_n with_o my_o second_o and_o three_o book_n as_o i_o hope_v to_o show_v at_o the_o end_n of_o the_o second_o and_o therefore_o whether_o any_o one_o treat_v of_o the_o devil_n and_o spirit_n according_a to_o the_o holy_a scripture_n or_o whether_o he_o only_o follow_v his_o own_o sense_n and_o right_n it_o may_v 〈◊〉_d assure_v that_o all_o his_o reason_n will_v turn_v upon_o this_o notion_n of_o he_o that_o god_n and_o the_o devil_n have_v each_o a_o empire_n one_o contrary_a to_o the_o other_o and_o that_o tho'_o the_o devil_n be_v subject_a to_o the_o power_n of_o god_n yet_o his_o empire_n be_v more_o apparent_a it_o be_v deny_v that_o god_n now_o work_v any_o miracle_n but_o some_o be_v rash_o ascribe_v to_o the_o devil_n that_o surpass_v all_o those_o that_o be_v mention_v in_o the_o holy_a writ_n we_o believe_v that_o there_o be_v angel_n and_o gather_v from_o the_o holy_a scripture_n that_o they_o encamp_v about_o the_o faithful_a and_o the_o devil_n likewise_o be_v incessant_o active_a to_o do_v they_o hurt_v if_o possible_a he_o can_v but_o his_o abode_n be_v in_o hell_n however_o it_o be_v very_o rare_a to_o hear_v any_o one_o say_v he_o have_v see_v a_o angel_n in_o a_o vision_n whereas_o the_o devil_n appear_v almost_o continual_o if_o any_o thing_n have_v be_v either_o signify_v or_o foretell_v we_o never_o believe_v it_o to_o be_v the_o operation_n of_o a_o angel_n but_o of_o the_o devil_n one_o be_v possess_v by_o he_o and_o another_o bewitch_v by_o his_o mean_n unknown_a tongue_n be_v speak_v strange_a thing_n be_v say_v other_o no_o less_o wonderful_a be_v perform_v and_o the_o most_o hide_a secret_n discover_v but_o you_o will_v scarce_o meet_v with_o any_o that_o have_v so_o good_a opinion_n of_o the_o power_n of_o a_o angel_n if_o we_o have_v any_o holy_a thought_n or_o good_a inspiration_n how_o inconsiderable_a soever_o it_o may_v be_v we_o ascribe_v it_o to_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o seem_v not_o to_o believe_v that_o the_o angel_n be_v so_o much_o as_o capable_a of_o contribute_v to_o it_o since_o it_o never_o come_v in_o our_o mind_n to_o think_v upon_o they_o but_o the_o devil_n penetrate_v the_o most_o secret_a thought_n of_o man_n overthrow_v their_o best_a design_n and_o incessant_o excite_v they_o to_o evil_a if_o they_o be_v accuse_v and_o convict_v of_o any_o crime_n the_o excuse_n be_v always_o at_o hand_n for_o the_o devil_n have_v do_v it_o or_o at_o least_o
phantasm_n which_o according_a to_o the_o opinion_n of_o the_o papist_n be_v good_a and_o bad_a angel_n or_o soul_n of_o the_o decease_a which_o become_v visible_a or_o which_o be_v understand_v without_o be_v see_v either_o that_o they_o speak_v intelligible_o or_o that_o they_o make_v only_o some_o sound_n and_o noise_n there_o be_v yet_o this_o difference_n in_o their_o apparition_n that_o there_o be_v some_o soul_n which_o whether_o they_o manifest_v themselves_o visible_o or_o whether_o they_o be_v only_o hear_v work_v some_o effect_n whereas_o there_o be_v other_o that_o operate_v nothing_o schottus_n free_o teach_v we_o many_o thing_n which_o relate_v to_o they_o that_o be_v first_o in_o what_o place_n spectre_n chief_o use_v to_o appear_v second_o what_o spectre_n and_o phantasm_n be_v three_o what_o they_o act_n four_o to_o who_o they_o particular_o appear_v five_o what_o mean_v there_o be_v to_o avoid_v they_o and_o be_v rid_v of_o they_o sect._n 2._o those_o place_n where_o phantom_n appear_v schottus_n persuade_v himself_o that_o there_o be_v no_o place_n in_o the_o world_n but_o that_o may_v happen_v however_o that_o there_o be_v some_o where_o it_o happen_v more_o frequent_o than_o elsewhere_o as_o 1._o in_o desert_n and_o in_o solitary_a place_n he_o ground_n his_o opinion_n upon_o scripture_n isai_n 33.14_o apoc._n 18.2_o tob._n 8.3_o and_o confirm_v it_o by_o the_o consideration_n of_o that_o which_o happen_v to_o our_o saviour_n jesus_n christ_n himself_o st._n matthew_n chap._n 4._o st._n luke_n chap._n 4._o it_o be_v for_o this_o reason_n that_o the_o good_a st._n anthony_n be_v so_o hardly_o deal_v with_o in_o the_o desert_n by_o all_o sort_n of_o hobgobling_n and_o spirit_n pag._n 226._o 2._o if_o one_o be_v in_o the_o humour_n also_o to_o believe_v a_o sort_n of_o water_n demon_n our_o author_n will_v very_o often_o make_v they_o appear_v in_o pond_n and_o marsh_n pag._n 227._o 3._o if_o the_o pagan_n have_v have_v since_o a_o long_a time_n god_n of_o the_o grove_n the_o christian_n will_v not_o deny_v but_o that_o there_o be_v such_o for_o they_o say_v that_o there_o be_v particular_a phantom_n in_o wood_n and_o meadow_n pag._n 229._o 4._o when_o they_o be_v to_o fight_v any_o bloody_a battle_n or_o after_o it_o have_v be_v fight_v many_o spectre_n have_v often_o be_v see_v in_o the_o field_n of_o battle_n pag._n 230._o 5._o phantasm_n often_o appear_v in_o bath_n and_o stove_n pag._n 232._o 6._o which_o happen_v also_o in_o fortress_n and_o castle_n pag._n 234._o 7._o in_o mine_n and_o cavern_n as_o it_o have_v be_v say_v before_o concern_v mountain_n go_n pag._n 235._o 8._o there_o be_v see_v more_o apparition_n in_o place_n where_o murderer_n and_o thief_n haunt_v than_o in_o other_o place_n pag._n 235._o 9_o holy_a cloister_n church_n and_o temple_n of_o god_n worship_n be_v not_o also_o exempt_v pag._n 237._o as_o for_o i_o i_o be_o very_o much_o persuade_v that_o there_o be_v no_o place_n in_o the_o world_n where_o there_o be_v more_o delusion_n and_o apparition_n make_v or_o rather_o deceitful_a vision_n than_o in_o those_o place_n 10._o so_o it_o be_v no_o marvel_n that_o the_o same_o happen_v to_o every_o particular_a person_n in_o his_o house_n pag._n 238._o sect._n 3_o if_o one_o ask_v what_o it_o be_v that_o appear_v or_o what_o these_o fantome_n be_v you_o will_v not_o fail_v to_o be_v immediate_o satisfy_v sometime_o they_o be_v good_a angel_n but_o most_o frequent_o evil_a spirit_n soul_n of_o the_o decease_a however_o in_o this_o occasion_n there_o be_v say_v touch_v angel_n very_o little_a and_o that_o very_o uncertain_a fortassis_fw-la etiam_fw-la angeli_fw-la boni_fw-la sometime_o perhaps_o good_a angel_n say_v schotus_n pag._n 247._o but_o concern_v demon_n he_o affirm_v very_o neat_o and_o with_o a_o great_a assurance_n that_o they_o be_v not_o all_o alike_o wicked_a because_o phantasm_n be_v distinguish_v in_o mite_n &_o tetric●s_n seu_fw-la truculentos_fw-la in_o good_a and_o cruel_a that_o which_o be_v find_v explain_v in_o the_o same_o place_n by_o these_o word_n take_v out_o of_o cassien_n touch_v some_o unpure_a spirit_n as_o be_v ordinary_o call_v faunos_n faun_n kabautermannaken_v or_o hobgoblin_n it_o be_v notorious_a that_o they_o delude_v man_n as_o by_o way_n of_o sport_n and_o pastime_n so_o that_o in_o certain_a place_n they_o post_v themselves_o ordinary_o in_o the_o way_n and_o take_v they_o up_o however_o without_o torment_v the_o passenger_n they_o be_v content_v to_o laugh_v at_o they_o and_o make_v raillery_n and_o play_v they_o some_o pleasant_a prank_n and_o they_o seem_v rather_o to_o have_v a_o design_n to_o tire_v they_o than_o to_o give_v they_o any_o displeasure_n but_o it_o be_v also_o know_v there_o be_v other_o so_o evil_a and_o so_o cruel_a that_o it_o do_v not_o satisfy_v they_o to_o torment_v people_n and_o cruel_o to_o tear_v they_o where_o they_o come_v this_o aught_o to_o be_v understand_v of_o the_o possess_v but_o they_o will_v attack_v those_o who_o pass_v by_o although_o at_o the_o same_o time_n they_o be_v a_o great_a way_n off_o and_o horrible_o treat_v they_o see_v one_o that_o say_v he_o know_v they_o very_o well_o himself_o and_o further_o that_o no_o body_n be_v ignorant_a of_o it_o he_o rely_v upon_o his_o own_o persuasion_n and_o do_v applaud_v himself_o for_o it_o will_v it_o not_o be_v more_o mischievous_a than_o the_o will_n with_o a_o wisp_n himself_o that_o set_v upon_o passenger_n to_o suspect_v and_o confute_v his_o belief_n however_o he_o be_v but_o a_o little_a while_n to_o be_v quiet_a for_o we_o can_v avoid_v trouble_v he_o and_o show_v his_o error_n four_o the_o soul_n of_o the_o decease_a be_v either_o save_v or_o damn_v it_o be_v hold_v for_o certain_a that_o those_o that_o be_v happy_a be_v often_o see_v to_o appear_v to_o holy_a man_n for_o their_o good_a and_o that_o they_o appear_v still_o the_o legend_n contain_v a_o infinite_a number_n of_o example_n which_o have_v be_v compile_v from_o all_o sort_n of_o history_n even_o of_o those_o which_o be_v the_o least_o worthy_a of_o credit_n and_o that_o be_v enrich_v with_o a_o great_a many_o new_a ornament_n that_o have_v be_v lend_v they_o in_o compile_v of_o the_o work_n but_o there_o be_v none_o which_o appear_v so_o worthy_a of_o remark_n as_o these_o apparition_n of_o soul_n which_o happen_v in_o consequence_n of_o covenant_n that_o have_v be_v make_v betwixt_o holy_a people_n in_o their_o life_n time_n that_o be_v when_o two_o or_o more_o have_v mutual_o promise_v that_o who_o shall_v die_v first_o shall_v appear_v to_o the_o other_o and_o come_v and_o tell_v he_o news_n of_o the_o estate_n he_o be_v in_o whether_o in_o purgatory_n or_o in_o heaven_n the_o author_n make_v no_o doubt_n but_o the_o thing_n happen_v as_o it_o be_v agree_v but_o he_o dare_v not_o decide_v whether_o such_o a_o agreement_n be_v lawful_a in_o which_o case_n he_o believe_v it_o must_v be_v make_v by_o a_o particular_a inspiration_n from_o god_n p._n 333._o sect._n 5._o there_o be_v no_o more_o doubt_n of_o the_o apparition_n of_o soul_n that_o be_v damn_v and_o they_o be_v ground_v upon_o proof_n of_o the_o same_o certainty_n as_o the_o former_a schottus_n report_v a_o example_n draw_v from_o bencius_n and_o delrio_n which_o appear_v so_o strong_a and_o convince_a that_o he_o express_v himself_o thus_o at_o the_o end_n it_o be_v a_o story_n which_o be_v confirm_v by_o the_o belief_n general_o give_v to_o it_o it_o be_v public_o in_o all_o place_n by_o many_o book_n and_o by_o a_o great_a number_n of_o letter_n and_o the_o thing_n have_v happen_v in_o the_o time_n and_o place_n mention_v it_o be_v a_o question_n to_o know_v if_o any_o thing_n may_v not_o be_v false_a or_o mix_v with_o any_o falsity_n because_o it_o have_v be_v publish_v a_o long_a time_n without_o be_v contradict_v either_o in_o word_n or_o writing_n but_o it_o will_v be_v too_o long_o to_o treat_v upon_o this_o question_n here_o it_o will_v be_v proper_a in_o another_o place_n however_o if_o this_o history_n be_v true_a it_o may_v confirm_v the_o sentiment_n of_o the_o papist_n which_o say_v that_o the_o soul_n of_o the_o damn_a appear_v here_o upon_o earth_n to_o the_o live_n to_o present_v to_o they_o in_o a_o frightful_a manner_n the_o torment_n they_o suffer_v in_o hell_n to_o the_o end_n they_o may_v bring_v they_o by_o that_o to_o repent_v and_o leave_v off_o sin_v sect._n 6._o our_o jesuit_n be_v too_o wise_a to_o speak_v much_o himself_o of_o purgatory_n he_o leave_v that_o to_o other_o he_o hold_v nevertheless_o with_o those_o of_o his_o faith_n that_o the_o soul_n of_o the_o decease_a desire_n often_o of_o the_o live_n the_o help_n of_o their_o prayer_n and_o good_a work_n and_o that_o by_o consequence_n the_o
soul_n in_o whatsoever_o place_n they_o may_v be_v expect_v those_o that_o be_v enter_v into_o heaven_n or_o into_o hell_n appear_v to_o man_n p._n 253._o we_o see_v that_o he_o will_v not_o much_o trouble_v we_o with_o purgatory_n and_o instead_o of_o perplex_v himself_o with_o a_o determine_a place_n he_o choose_v rather_o to_o be_v at_o large_a in_o place_v soul_n in_o loco_fw-la dispensationis_fw-la in_o a_o place_n of_o dispensation_n such_o as_o the_o schoolman_n have_v forge_v it_o who_o opinion_n some_o of_o we_o find_v not_o condemnable_a in_o what_o place_n soever_o those_o soul_n may_v be_v the_o papist_n believe_v certain_o that_o they_o appear_v often_o to_o man_n to_o the_o end_n that_o have_v be_v mention_v it_o be_v also_o the_o common_a opinion_n that_o the_o great_a part_n of_o the_o soul_n be_v not_o those_o that_o be_v in_o paradise_n or_o in_o hell_n but_o those_o that_o dwell_v between_o those_o two_o place_n or_o in_o purgatory_n for_o frequent_a journey_n from_o heaven_n to_o earth_n will_v too_o much_o disturb_v the_o repose_n of_o the_o soul_n that_o be_v there_o and_o hell_n keep_v its_o captive_n too_o close_o confine_v to_o give_v they_o so_o much_o liberty_n and_o if_o it_o be_v permit_v i_o to_o divert_v the_o public_a i_o shall_v say_v it_o will_v bring_v no_o profit_n to_o the_o church_n coffer_n who_o fire_n of_o purgatory_n make_v the_o pot_n boil_v much_o better_a than_o all_o the_o flame_n of_o hell_n do_v or_o all_o the_o heat_n of_o the_o celestial_a fire_n sect._n 7._o if_o one_o will_v know_v what_o all_o those_o phantom_n do_v in_o the_o world_n schottus_n will_v not_o fail_v to_o inform_v you_o and_o even_o to_o mark_v with_o a_o great_a deal_n of_o care_n and_o exactness_n many_o different_a manner_n in_o which_o they_o show_v themselves_o p._n 269_o etc._n etc._n first_o they_o appear_v to_o the_o sight_n under_o divers_a figure_n as_o well_o of_o man_n as_o of_o beast_n or_o frightful_a monster_n second_o the_o ear_n be_v often_o strike_v without_o see_v any_o thing_n and_o even_o sometime_o in_o such_o a_o extraordinary_a manner_n that_o it_o cause_v astonishment_n and_o fear_n p._n 271._o three_o the_o touch_n have_v its_o share_n in_o it_o if_o what_o the_o author_n say_v be_v true_a that_o they_o move_v they_o sometime_o to_o touch_v man_n without_o do_v they_o any_o harm_n but_o at_o other_o time_n they_o push_v they_o so_o that_o they_o drive_v they_o with_o violence_n they_o make_v they_o fall_v down_o bruise_v they_o and_o beat_v they_o that_o they_o even_o trouble_v they_o and_o tempt_v they_o to_o lechery_n p._n 273._o sect._n 8._o it_o be_v likewise_o necessary_a to_o know_v that_o which_o be_v write_v concern_v the_o figure_n of_o body_n in_o which_o phantasm_n appear_v he_o say_v p._n 287._o that_o the_o abbot_n trithemeus_n thyreus_n delrius_n and_o other_o whence_o it_o apperr_v that_o it_o be_v the_o common_a opinion_n relate_v certain_a sign_n by_o which_o one_o may_v know_v if_o whether_o spirit_n who_o present_v themselves_o in_o a_o corporeal_a form_n be_v angel_n or_o man_n good_a angel_n or_o devil_n soul_n of_o the_o bless_a or_o damn_v or_o soul_n which_o be_v in_o purgatory_n to_o be_v purify_v there_o however_o he_o afford_v not_o a_o very_a ample_a instruction_n upon_o this_o point_n for_o the_o chief_a matter_n that_o he_o say_v of_o it_o be_v that_o the_o soul_n of_o the_o bless_a appear_v with_o a_o air_n of_o content_n and_o joy_n that_o the_o soul_n which_o be_v in_o purgatory_n have_v a_o more_o doleful_a countenance_n but_o that_o those_o of_o the_o damn_a have_v a_o more_o frightful_a aspect_n with_o sign_n of_o despair_n and_o tho'_o it_o be_v the_o common_a opinion_n that_o there_o be_v always_o some_o defect_n or_o something_o disfigure_v in_o the_o body_n in_o which_o the_o devil_n present_v himself_o notwithstanding_o neither_o our_o jesuit_n nor_o delrius_n hold_v it_o for_o certain_a see_v that_o which_o the_o first_o put_v for_o certain_a and_o as_o general_o believe_v p._n 291._o it_o be_v that_o when_o the_o devil_n appear_v and_o speak_v he_o always_o speak_v the_o language_n of_o the_o country_n where_o he_o be_v so_o that_o he_o must_v understand_v more_o language_n than_o mithridates_n or_o every_o devil_n can_v appear_v but_o in_o his_o proper_a country_n but_o the_o voice_n of_o a_o spectre_n be_v always_o perplex_v tremble_a weak_a and_o as_o mutter_n as_o tho'_o it_o be_v understand_v through_o a_o tub_n or_o through_o the_o cheft_n of_o a_o earthen_a vessel_n for_o say_v schottus_n the_o devil_n can_v speak_v no_o better_o see_v according_a to_o this_o author_n and_o those_o of_o his_o belief_n a_o good_a mark_n to_o know_v he_o sect._n 9_o we_o must_v not_o omit_v that_o which_o be_v give_v out_o as_o a_o thing_n certain_a that_o a_o phantasm_n feel_v always_o cold_a when_o one_o touch_v it_o cardan_n &_o alexander_n ab_fw-la alexandro_n be_v witness_n that_o affirm_v it_o and_o cajetan_n give_v a_o reason_n that_o he_o have_v learn_v from_o the_o devil_n be_v own_o mouth_n who_o be_v ask_v by_o a_o witch_n concern_v this_o subject_n answer_v that_o the_o thing_n must_v needs_o be_v so_o and_o that_o it_o can_v not_o be_v otherwise_o the_o cardinal_n explain_v the_o word_n of_o the_o devil_n in_o this_o sense_n that_o he_o will_v not_o communicate_v to_o a_o body_n he_o take_v that_o moderate_a heat_n which_o be_v so_o agreeable_a or_o that_o god_n will_v not_o permit_v he_o the_o witch_n be_v content_v with_o that_o positive_a answer_n without_o put_v the_o question_n further_o sect._n 10._o the_o question_n now_o be_v to_o know_v who_o they_o be_v which_o often_o see_v spectre_n our_o author_n answer_v pertinent_o to_o this_o question_n p._n 292_o and_o 293._o and_o his_o word_n deserve_v very_o well_o to_o be_v report_v as_o they_o be_v the_o soul_n which_o be_v in_o purgatory_n appear_v rather_o to_o the_o faithful_a then_o to_o the_o excommunicate_v or_o to_o infidel_n and_o among_o these_o first_o they_o appear_v rather_o to_o their_o parent_n to_o their_o ally_n and_o to_o those_o which_o belong_v to_o they_o in_o any_o manner_n whatsoever_o than_o they_o do_v to_o stranger_n because_o that_o they_o hope_v for_o succour_v from_o they_o which_o they_o can_v hope_v from_o other_o the_o soul_n of_o the_o damn_a appear_v particular_o to_o those_o which_o have_v be_v the_o cause_n of_o their_o loss_n and_o of_o the_o torment_n they_o suffer_v the_o apparition_n of_o devil_n be_v make_v also_o with_o reference_n to_o the_o ruin_n of_o those_o they_o persecute_v and_o their_o ill_a will_n for_o mankind_n who_o they_o take_v pleasure_n to_o torment_v on_o the_o first_o respect_n those_o who_o be_v charge_v with_o a_o great_a number_n of_o sin_n have_v most_o to_o suffer_v in_o the_o second_o the_o most_o virtuous_a man_n be_v the_o more_o expose_v to_o their_o attack_n sect._n 11._o after_o the_o spectre_n let_v we_o come_v to_o the_o possesse_v refer_v the_o remedy_n against_o these_o two_o accident_n to_o the_o follow_a chapter_n that_o which_o happen_v to_o the_o possess_v give_v occasion_n to_o know_v more_o particular_o what_o the_o devil_n can_v act_v possess_v say_v schottus_n be_v a_o inevitable_a torment_n to_o man_n from_o the_o devil_n which_o be_v in_o his_o body_n who_o act_v there_o and_o keep_v he_o in_o his_o power_n for_o a_o certain_a time_n p._n 521._o which_o he_o unfold_v more_o particular_o afterward_o but_o as_o there_o have_v be_v late_o publish_v a_o history_n of_o the_o devil_n of_o loudun_n and_o of_o a_o possession_n very_o famous_a say_v to_o have_v happen_v in_o the_o town_n the_o circumstance_n of_o which_o give_v a_o great_a deal_n of_o light_n upon_o this_o point_n we_o will_v allege_v that_o which_o will_v be_v proper_a for_o this_o subject_n refer_v a_o more_o strict_a examination_n to_o our_o four_o book_n which_o we_o shall_v not_o be_v afraid_a to_o do_v notwithstanding_o the_o author_n appear_v to_o be_v a_o protestant_n because_o that_o the_o most_o part_n of_o the_o story_n this_o history_n contain_v be_v gather_v from_o many_o ecclesiastic_a book_n where_o they_o be_v ground_v upon_o authentic_a public_a act_n and_o that_o the_o possession_n be_v declare_v true_a by_o a_o decree_n of_o the_o bishop_n it_o be_v also_o confirm_v by_o the_o blood_n of_o a_o priest_n who_o be_v execute_v for_o a_o magician_n after_o have_v be_v condemn_v by_o a_o act_n make_v by_o a_o sentence_n of_o judge_n commissioner_n send_v by_o the_o french_a king_n to_o examine_v this_o affair_n see_v then_o yet_o what_o schottus_n say_v p._n 533._o etc._n etc._n first_o that_o a_o man_n may_v be_v possess_v by_o all_o sort_n of_o evil_a spirit_n of_o what_o order_n soever_o they_o may_v be_v for_o it_o have_v be_v say_v in_o
great_a britain_n which_o be_v king_n james_z the_o sixth_z king_n of_o scotland_n and_o first_o king_n of_o england_n of_o that_o name_n and_o the_o other_o to_o one_o of_o his_o scotch_a subject_n a_o scot_n by_o birth_n as_o by_o name_n be_v call_v reynard_n scot_n the_o king_n hold_v the_o affirmative_a as_o to_o the_o popular_a opinion_n of_o witchcraft_n and_o apparition_n of_o spirit_n which_o his_o subject_n have_v already_o confute_v john_n wierus_n who_o live_v in_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o reformation_n make_v by_o mean_n of_o luther_n and_o calvin_n have_v from_o that_o time_n publish_v his_o opinion_n upon_o the_o delusion_n of_o spirit_n and_o upon_o the_o imposture_n of_o witch_n and_o he_o have_v take_v a_o part_n which_o hold_v in_o the_o middle_n between_o those_o two_o opinion_n so_o king_n james_n in_o his_o book_n of_o demonology_n contest_v with_o these_o two_o author_n according_a to_o his_o express_a declaration_n in_o the_o preface_n sect._n 8._o what_o be_v most_o important_a in_o his_o book_n come_v very_o near_o to_o this_o in_o the_o six_o chapter_n of_o the_o first_o book_n there_o be_v description_n so_o exact_a of_o league_n that_o magician_n make_v with_o the_o devil_n that_o it_o seem_v as_o if_o the_o king_n himself_o have_v see_v the_o original_a or_o that_o they_o have_v be_v report_v in_o the_o council_n in_o the_o four_o chapter_n of_o the_o second_o book_n the_o king_n put_v for_o certain_a that_o evil_a spirit_n may_v carry_v man_n through_o the_o air_n or_o assume_v divers_a form_n to_o visit_v the_o magician_n when_o they_o be_v in_o prison_n in_o the_o seven_o chapter_n he_o say_v that_o in_o the_o time_n of_o popery_n and_o paganism_n there_o be_v a_o great_a many_o more_o apparition_n but_o that_o it_o be_v observe_v that_o since_o this_o last_o reformation_n of_o the_o christian_a church_n there_o have_v be_v few_o apparition_n and_o a_o great_a many_o more_o witchcraft_n concern_v the_o apparition_n of_o hobgoblin_n and_o phantom_n of_o which_o he_o treat_v in_o the_o three_o book_n there_o be_v scarce_o any_o kind_n to_o which_o this_o prince_n give_v not_o credit_n even_o to_o incubus_n and_o succubuss_n which_o be_v spirit_n who_o as_o man_n mix_v themselves_o carnal_o with_o woman_n and_o as_o woman_n with_o men._n in_o reference_n to_o the_o possess_v the_o king_n agree_v that_o the_o popish_a priest_n may_v drive_v out_o the_o devil_n but_o upon_o the_o proof_n that_o he_o have_v to_o convince_v one_o of_o the_o crime_n of_o magic_n he_o only_o say_v there_o must_v be_v no_o less_o than_o twelve_o witness_n among_o which_o may_v be_v admit_v infant_n infamous_a people_n and_o even_o those_o that_o be_v take_v to_o be_v magician_n sect._n 9_o now_o althô_o the_o learned_a as_o i_o have_v already_o say_v extol_v not_o so_o much_o all_o these_o thing_n nor_o teach_v they_o so_o express_o and_o that_o by_o consequence_n they_o credit_v not_o so_o much_o what_o be_v ordinary_o believe_v and_o say_v touch_v the_o power_n and_o operation_n of_o the_o devil_n upon_o man_n and_o concern_v that_o which_o they_o effect_v by_o the_o mean_n of_o man_n we_o must_v however_o observe_v that_o they_o give_v so_o much_o extent_n to_o his_o power_n and_o action_n that_o not_o only_o they_o help_v not_o to_o destroy_v the_o general_a opinion_n that_o be_v have_v of_o he_o but_o also_o maintain_v it_o by_o different_a expression_n they_o make_v use_v of_o and_o by_o the_o instruction_n they_o give_v it_o be_v what_o be_v see_v especial_o in_o the_o work_n of_o two_o english_a author_n who_o explain_v themselves_o more_o plain_o and_o precise_o than_o all_o other_o upon_o this_o matter_n which_o they_o treat_v from_o the_o foundation_n whereas_o other_o keep_v the_o same_o language_n only_o by_o occasion_n and_o when_o treat_v of_o other_o subject_n they_o be_v oblige_v to_o speak_v of_o they_o the_o first_o of_o these_o author_n be_v william_n gurnal_a in_o his_o great_a book_n upon_o the_o ephesian_n 6.11.18_o entitle_v the_o christian_n in_o complete_a armour_n the_o first_o edition_n be_v in_o the_o year_n 1655._o and_o since_o there_o have_v be_v print_v at_o london_n in_o folio_n in_o 1679._o the_o six_o edition_n he_o say_v that_o the_o devil_n be_v a_o spiritual_a be_v extreme_o evil_a these_o two_o consideration_n ought_v to_o cause_v a_o great_a deal_n of_o fear_n to_o a_o christian_a p._n 94._o because_o he_o be_v a_o great_a prince_n who_o surpass_v man_n very_o much_o in_o power_n and_o craft_n that_o his_o craft_n be_v observe_v by_o his_o marvellous_a knowledge_n first_o in_o spy_v proper_a occasion_n to_o tempt_v man_n p._n 36._o second_o in_o his_o subtle_a and_o artificial_a conduct_n and_o in_o all_o the_o vice_n he_o make_v use_v of_o for_o this_o effect_n p._n 37._o three_o in_o the_o care_n he_o take_v to_o make_v all_o the_o preparation_n necessary_a to_o attack_v we_o to_o his_o advantage_n every_o time_n he_o find_v opportunity_n to_o do_v it_o p._n 43._o four_o in_o the_o trouble_n that_o he_o stir_v up_o in_o our_o conscience_n in_o reproach_v we_o with_o our_o sin_n and_o in_o the_o artifices_fw-la that_o he_o use_v and_o the_o ambush_n he_o lay_v p._n 44._o as_o to_o what_o concern_v the_o power_n and_o virtue_n of_o the_o devil_n the_o author_n hold_v in_o the_o first_o place_n that_o he_o have_v power_n not_o only_o on_o the_o element_n and_o corporeal_a sense_n but_o also_o upon_o spiritual_a substance_n of_o the_o world_n and_o upon_o the_o soul_n of_o man_n p._n 74._o afterward_o he_o declare_v what_o be_v the_o time_n and_o place_n of_o his_o empire_n over_o his_o subject_n viz._n the_o time_n in_o this_o life_n over_o people_n of_o darkness_n the_o place_n in_o the_o world_n for_o as_o much_o as_o it_o be_v plunge_v into_o impiety_n p._n 79._o sect._n 10._o the_o other_o english_a author_n be_v joseph_n glanvill_n the_o title_n of_o which_o book_n be_v saducismus_n triumphatus_n saducism_n defeat_v a_o book_n wherein_o he_o employ_v a_o great_a deal_n of_o learning_n to_o prove_v that_o witchcraft_n enchantment_n apparition_n and_o phantom_n be_v possible_a and_o afterward_o that_o they_o be_v thing_n practise_v and_o which_o actual_o happen_v the_o first_o edition_n of_o it_o have_v be_v also_o in_o english_a at_o london_n in_o 1661._o after_o the_o death_n of_o the_o author_n he_o pretend_v that_o what_o he_o establish_v as_o a_o certain_a truth_n be_v ground_v upon_o reason_n and_o example_n and_o i_o grant_v that_o as_o to_o the_o force_n of_o reason_v i_o do_v not_o know_v any_o writer_n who_o have_v better_a succeed_v than_o he_o have_v here_o be_v his_o suppose_a truth_n that_o among_o other_o effect_n which_o be_v attribute_v to_o magician_n of_o both_o sex_n first_o be_v anoint_v with_o certain_a magical_a ointment_n they_o pass_v through_o the_o chimney_n and_o be_v transport_v into_o very_o distant_a place_n second_o that_o they_o be_v turn_v into_o cat_n hare_n and_o divers_a other_o creature_n and_o figure_n three_o that_o they_o feel_v in_o their_o own_o body_n the_o same_o wound_n that_o be_v make_v in_o the_o body_n they_o borrow_v four_o that_o in_o mutter_v certain_a unintelligible_a word_n and_o in_o make_v certain_a gesture_n extraordinary_a and_o ridiculous_a they_o raise_v tempest_n five_o that_o they_o be_v suck_v by_o familiar_a spirit_n in_o the_o most_o secret_a part_n of_o their_o body_n the_o author_n believe_v that_o the_o more_o these_o thing_n be_v incredible_a and_o ridiculous_a the_o more_o certain_a they_o be_v i_o shall_v examine_v his_o reason_n in_o my_o second_o and_o three_o book_n and_o his_o instance_n in_o my_o last_o with_o more_o exactness_n than_o what_o other_o author_n have_v write_v upon_o this_o subject_a for_o the_o consideration_n i_o have_v already_o allege_v that_o he_o carry_v it_o above_o all_o other_o as_o to_o the_o force_n of_o his_o reason_v sect._n 11._o all_o that_o have_v hitherto_o be_v sa●d_n respect_n first_o the_o devil_n and_o afterward_o man_n that_o be_v believe_v to_o have_v commerce_n with_o he_o consider_v distinct_o and_o separately_z from_o he_o but_o a_o union_n must_v be_v make_v betwixt_o they_o for_o which_o effect_n the_o league_n already_o mention_v be_v invent_v sect_n 5._o of_o this_o chapter_n and_o heretofore_o chap._n 20._o sect._n 13._o moreover_o the_o opinion_n which_o have_v be_v report_v have_v pass_v from_o popery_n among_o we_o and_o be_v admit_v by_o many_o doctor_n of_o our_o communion_n yet_o i_o know_v not_o any_o who_o have_v take_v their_o part_n so_o much_o as_o daneus_n which_o be_v chief_o observe_v in_o two_o point_n in_o his_o description_n of_o the_o league_n and_o in_o the_o effect_n he_o attribute_n to_o sorcerer_n and_o witch_n for_o these_o two_o thing_n be_v find_v very_o ample_o treat_v of_o in_o his_o
which_o be_v nevertheless_o the_o common_a belief_n of_o all_o the_o pagan_n which_o be_v receive_v among_o the_o jew_n and_o have_v not_o be_v confute_v sufficient_o by_o the_o primitive_a christian_n among_o who_o be_v find_v some_o who_o have_v express_o teach_v it_o sect._n 7._o but_o the_o pagan_n differ_v from_o the_o mahometan_n and_o christian_n chief_o in_o two_o point_n first_o that_o they_o mix_v and_o confound_v together_o the_o supreme_a god_n with_o other_o superior_a and_o inferior_a god_n good_a and_o bad_a and_o also_o the_o soul_n of_o man_n with_o all_o those_o god_n in_o such_o a_o confuse_a manner_n that_o it_o be_v impossible_a to_o comprehend_v any_o thing_n and_o that_o it_o be_v a_o labyrinth_n from_o whence_o they_o can_v extricate_v themselves_o on_o the_o contrary_a the_o jew_n and_o mahometan_n agree_v with_o the_o christian_n in_o this_o point_n that_o there_o be_v one_o only_a god_n and_o that_o all_o that_o be_v beside_o he_o have_v be_v create_v by_o he_o second_o in_o that_o that_o not_o only_o they_o make_v no_o great_a difficulty_n to_o deify_v man_n but_o that_o they_o make_v also_o the_o god_n return_v to_o the_o condition_n of_o man_n and_o that_o they_o believe_v there_o be_v man_n the_o issue_n of_o the_o god_n there_o be_v some_o of_o these_o error_n which_o the_o papist_n can_v boast_v of_o be_v entire_o free_a from_o for_o they_o may_v reasonable_o be_v reproach_v that_o they_o have_v substitute_v their_o saint_n to_o these_o imaginary_a god_n and_o to_o those_o demon_n of_o the_o pagan_n that_o they_o speak_v of_o saint_n as_o the_o pagan_n do_v of_o their_o god_n that_o they_o make_v they_o act_v in_o the_o same_o manner_n that_o these_o false_a deity_n be_v suppose_v to_o act_v but_o pure_a christianity_n such_o as_o have_v be_v in_o all_o time_n upon_o this_o point_n never_o make_v god_n a_o man_n nor_o never_o raise_v man_n to_o the_o dignity_n of_o god_n sect._n 8._o there_o be_v notwithstanding_o some_o point_n upon_o which_o the_o protestant_n be_v not_o agree_v and_o upon_o which_o nevertheless_o the_o papist_n the_o primitive_a christian_n the_o jew_n the_o mahometan_n and_o all_o the_o pagan_n agree_v viz._n the_o tutelary_a god_n of_o the_o pagan_n who_o be_v the_o guardian_n angel_n in_o the_o first_o christianity_n we_o have_v late_o see_v they_o be_v admit_v without_o contestation_n among_o the_o papist_n the_o protestant_n in_o general_a be_v not_o dispose_v to_o receive_v this_o opinion_n those_o of_o the_o profession_n of_o france_n holland_n and_o switzerland_n reject_v it_o and_o nevertheless_o there_o be_v some_o but_o very_o few_o that_o admit_v it_o or_o at_o least_o believe_v not_o that_o there_o be_v sufficient_a reason_n to_o oppose_v it_o we_o shall_v examine_v afterward_o which_o be_v the_o sound_a of_o these_o opinion_n in_o the_o mean_a while_o we_o must_v take_v notice_n before_o hand_n that_o what_o the_o papist_n teach_v upon_o this_o subject_n together_o with_o some_o of_o other_o christian_n that_o be_v not_o of_o their_o communion_n relate_v more_o to_o the_o light_n and_o knowledge_n which_o they_o suppose_v that_o those_o spirit_n communicate_v to_o they_o than_o real_a help_n they_o can_v expect_v in_o their_o action_n and_o in_o their_o manner_n of_o live_v for_o it_o be_v rare_o see_v or_o to_o say_v better_o it_o be_v never_o see_v that_o the_o people_n ascribe_v a_o considerable_a deliverance_n or_o a_o great_a oppression_n that_o befall_v they_o to_o a_o angel_n either_o their_o keeper_n or_o their_o enemy_n but_o they_o never_o fail_v to_o ascribe_v it_o immediate_o to_o the_o providence_n of_o god_n or_o if_o they_o sometime_o turn_v their_o eye_n to_o another_o side_n the_o papist_n as_o to_o their_o particular_a refer_v all_o the_o good_a that_o happen_v to_o they_o to_o the_o protection_n of_o some_o great_a saint_n especial_o to_o that_o of_o the_o virgin_n mary_n but_o the_o protestant_n lest_o they_o shall_v seem_v to_o favour_v the_o belief_n of_o the_o popish_a saint_n will_v rather_o say_v if_o occasion_n serve_v that_o the_o devil_n be_v the_o author_n of_o it_o sect._n 9_o there_o be_v also_o a_o difference_n to_o be_v take_v notice_n of_o betwixt_o the_o heathen_n on_o one_o side_n the_o jew_n and_o the_o mahometan_n on_o the_o other_o and_o all_o the_o christian_n on_o another_o it_o be_v chief_o in_o the_o practice_n of_o witchcraft_n and_o divination_n which_o according_a to_o the_o principle_n of_o the_o first_o be_v a_o laudable_a practice_n in_o itself_o althô_o often_o abuse_v as_o a_o great_a many_o good_a thing_n be_v according_a to_o the_o principle_n of_o the_o second_o it_o be_v only_o allow_v and_o useful_a in_o many_o occasion_n and_o according_a to_o the_o last_o it_o be_v direct_o opposite_a to_o christianity_n the_o reason_n of_o it_o be_v that_o the_o pagan_n hold_v for_o god_n or_o at_o least_o for_o minister_n and_o ambassador_n of_o the_o god_n spirit_n which_o be_v look_v upon_o by_o christian_n as_o unpure_a spirit_n and_o that_o the_o jew_n and_o the_o mahometan_n cause_n to_o proceed_v from_o the_o virtue_n of_o the_o caballa_n and_o the_o influence_n of_o the_o star_n whatever_o the_o christian_n take_v to_o be_v magic_a witchcraft_n or_o enchantment_n it_o be_v true_a that_o in_o the_o time_n of_o ancient_a paganism_n the_o mathematician_n have_v be_v put_v into_o the_o rank_n of_o poisoner_n and_o that_o both_o be_v treat_v as_o person_n equal_o pernicious_a to_o who_o it_o be_v forbid_v to_o exercise_v their_o art_n as_o be_v unlawful_a but_o the_o occasion_n of_o these_o prohibition_n be_v only_o found_v upon_o the_o ill_a use_n that_o be_v make_v of_o this_o art_n which_o have_v be_v before_o not_o only_o permit_v but_o even_o much_o esteem_v at_o this_o time_n the_o christian_n have_v no_o long_o any_o aversion_n for_o the_o name_n of_o mathematician_n but_o that_o of_o poisoner_n never_o receive_v any_o good_a interpretation_n no_o that_o word_n be_v here_o to_o be_v dispute_v for_o it_o be_v of_o thing_n that_o we_o treat_v and_o we_o be_v to_o examine_v they_o and_o not_o word_n perhaps_o there_o will_v be_v occasion_n to_o have_v some_o regard_n to_o they_o in_o our_o three_o book_n where_o without_o doubt_n it_o will_v be_v necessary_a to_o speak_v full_o of_o these_o term_n and_o of_o many_o other_o sect._n 10._o let_v we_o now_o see_v what_o conformity_n be_v find_v among_o all_o these_o people_n together_o pagan_n jew_n mahometan_n christian_n both_o ancient_a and_o modern_a roman_a catholic_n protestant_n and_o other_o they_o all_o confess_v first_o that_o there_o be_v spirit_n distinct_a from_o god_n and_o body_n for_o tho'_o some_o contrive_v yet_o another_o kind_n of_o spirit_n as_o we_o have_v say_v it_o be_v one_o of_o the_o point_n in_o dispute_n among_o they_o and_o now_o we_o be_v about_o to_o seek_v wherein_o they_o agree_v together_o second_o that_o there_o nature_n be_v different_a some_o absolute_o subsist_v without_o body_n as_o angel_n and_o other_o be_v unite_v to_o a_o body_n as_o soul_n three_o that_o however_o both_o be_v mortal_a four_o that_o of_o such_o spirit_n as_o be_v unite_v to_o a_o body_n some_o be_v good_a to_o man_n and_o other_o bad_a five_o that_o therefore_o man_n have_v reason_n to_o seek_v the_o friendship_n of_o good_a spirit_n that_o be_v the_o angel_n and_o to_o take_v all_o possible_a care_n to_o divert_v from_o he_o evil_a spirit_n which_o be_v devil_n six_o that_o a_o infinite_a happiness_n or_o misery_n attend_v man_n after_o this_o life_n seven_o that_o likewise_o of_o the_o soul_n of_o the_o decease_a some_o be_v bad_a and_o some_o good_a and_o holy_a tho'_o they_o seem_v not_o to_o explain_v themselves_o always_o in_o the_o same_o manner_n sometime_o upon_o one_o of_o the_o point_n and_o sometime_o upon_o the_o other_o it_o i●_n nevertheless_o certain_a consider_v the_o bottom_n of_o the_o matter_n that_o their_o sentiment_n be_v agreeable_a see_v then_o in_o what_o consist_v the_o conformity_n of_o the_o opinion_n in_o general_a of_o all_o nation_n and_o in_o what_o they_o differ_v we_o have_v now_o to_o examine_v what_o be_v true_a or_o what_o not_o in_o all_o that_o have_v be_v relate_v and_o it_o be_v for_o that_o purpose_n i_o design_v my_o second_o and_o three_o book_n according_a to_o the_o division_n i_o have_v establish_v before_o chapter_n the_o first_o sect._n 8._o however_o we_o shall_v yet_o see_v what_o caution_n may_v be_v draw_v from_o all_o that_o have_v be_v say_v chap._n xxiv_o that_o all_o that_o have_v be_v relate_v show_v upon_o what_o foundation_n the_o christian_n in_o general_a and_o the_o protestant_n in_o particular_a say_v such_o extraordinary_a thing_n of_o the_o devil_n sect._n 1_o before_o i_o pass_v to_o my_o second_o book_n where_o i_o shall_v examine_v what_o be_v pure_o
allege_v but_o to_o set_v off_o with_o some_o likelihood_n the_o private_a opinion_n with_o which_o we_o be_v take_v up_o sect._n 9_o i_o hope_v that_o what_o i_o have_v just_a now_o say_v will_v easy_o be_v credit_v if_o attention_n be_v give_v to_o what_o follow_v i_o say_v that_o the_o character_n of_o philosophy_n such_o as_o be_v learn_v in_o the_o school_n pour_v itself_o upon_o all_o the_o interpretation_n and_o translation_n that_o be_v of_o the_o holy_a writ_n it_o be_v the_o opinion_n of_o aristotle_n that_o the_o four_o element_n earth_n water_n air_n and_o fire_n be_v include_v within_o one_o another_o as_o by_o circle_n reach_v from_o the_o centre_n to_o the_o high_a place_n of_o the_o universe_n so_o as_o that_o the_o earth_n be_v the_o low_a be_v mix_v with_o water_n in_o its_o superficies_n and_o the_o air_n above_o it_o surround_v the_o terraqueous_a globe_n these_o proposition_n be_v grant_v by_o all_o but_o that_o philosopher_n also_o believe_v that_o fire_n surround_v the_o air_n as_o the_o celestial_a heaven_n divide_v into_o several_a vault_n do_v fire_n these_o vault_n to_o which_o the_o sun_n moon_n and_o star_n be_v fasten_v and_o be_v of_o a_o subtle_a and_o incorruptible_a matter_n in_o themselves_o surround_v one_o another_o and_o turn_v about_o we_o every_o year_n every_o month_n and_o every_o day_n by_o the_o virtue_n of_o some_o certain_a spirit_n call_v assist_v form_n those_o that_o hold_v that_o opinion_n for_o probable_a be_v very_o apt_a to_o be_v persuade_v that_o the_o wicked_a spirit_n dwell_v in_o the_o air_n because_o the_o superior_a sphere_n be_v too_o pure_a for_o they_o when_o therefore_o those_o sort_n of_o man_n hear_v st._n paul_n mention_v the_o prince_n of_o the_o power_n of_o the_o air_n ephes_n 2.1_o or_o the_o spiritual_a wickedness_n in_o high_a place_n ch._n 6.12_o they_o doubt_v not_o but_o st._n paul_n be_v of_o the_o opinion_n of_o aristotle_n and_o that_o by_o these_o word_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n the_o wicked_a spirit_n must_v be_v understand_v thus_o those_o who_o by_o read_v plato_n have_v fill_v their_o head_n with_o his_o demon_n fancy_v that_o t●is_n word_n be_v use_v in_o the_o scripture_n in_o a_o platonic_a sense_n without_o consider_v that_o this_o philosopher_n live_v not_o in_o the_o time_n that_o the_o holy_a writ_n be_v publish_v in_o which_o the_o former_a signification_n of_o these_o term_n may_v be_v change_v as_o it_o daily_o happen_v and_o without_o so_o much_o as_o examine_v in_o what_o sense_n they_o be_v take_v by_o other_o author_n contemporary_a with_o the_o sacred_a writer_n whether_o it_o be_v probable_a that_o other_o author_n who_o book_n be_v lose_v understand_v they_o in_o the_o same_o sense_n or_o last_o whether_o the_o jew_n in_o who_o tongue_n the_o holy_a scripture_n be_v write_v and_o who_o consequent_o ought_v to_o understand_v it_o best_o put_v the_o same_o signification_n upon_o they_o sect._n 10._o what_o i_o say_v of_o the_o ill_a use_n make_v of_o philosophy_n as_o to_o this_o point_n must_v not_o appear_v strange_a for_o it_o extend_v to_o every_o thing_n when_o copernicus_n begin_v to_o assert_v by_o reason_n that_o seem_v very_o strong_a to_o he_o that_o the_o sun_n be_v fast_o and_o unmoveable_a and_o that_o the_o terraqueous_a globe_n move_v those_o that_o hold_v the_o hypothesis_n of_o ptolomey_n pretend_v to_o explode_v that_o opinion_n by_o clear_a and_o formal_a text_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n but_o those_o that_o maintain_v it_o contrive_v explication_n to_o those_o passage_n and_o want_v not_o plausible_a reason_n to_o set_v they_o off_o thus_o those_o that_o after_o descartes_n believe_v man_n have_v a_o idea_n of_o god_n in_o his_o understanding_n find_v the_o same_o doctrine_n in_o st._n paul_n and_o understand_v in_o that_o sense_n these_o word_n of_o his_o epistle_n to_o the_o roman_n ch._n 1.19_o that_o which_o may_v be_v know_v of_o god_n be_v manifest_a in_o they_o for_o god_n have_v show_v it_o unto_o they_o even_o some_o of_o descartes_n follower_n have_v explain_v the_o history_n of_o the_o creation_n in_o the_o first_o chapter_n of_o genesis_n according_a to_o the_o principle_n of_o that_o philosopher_n that_o be_v quite_o contrary_a to_o the_o right_a meaning_n of_o this_o narration_n as_o the_o author_n himself_o confess_v in_o his_o little_a book_n entitle_v cartesius_n mosaisans_n sect._n 11._o it_o be_v the_o same_o with_o divinity_n as_o with_o philosophy_n those_o that_o be_v call_v the_o father_n of_o the_o church_n that_o be_v her_o first_o or_o chief_a doctor_n in_o the_o primitive_a time_n the_o authority_n of_o who_o the_o papist_n equal_a to_o that_o of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n have_v be_v at_o first_o imbue_v with_o that_o false_a philosophy_n do_v not_o so_o much_o as_o think_v upon_o free_v themselves_o of_o their_o prejudices_fw-la by_o a_o true_a interpretation_n and_o translation_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n on_o the_o contrary_a they_o have_v pour_v their_o prevention_n over_o whatever_o they_o have_v write_v for_o whether_o they_o treat_v of_o such_o article_n of_o faith_n as_o be_v most_o controvert_v or_o whether_o they_o interpret_v passage_n of_o the_o holy_a writ_n they_o have_v adhere_v to_o bare_a speculation_n and_o apply_v they_o to_o subject_n quite_o different_a from_o those_o the_o sacred_a write_v aim_v at_o st._n austin_n in_o the_o four_o and_o 5_o century_n have_v be_v fruitful_a in_o speculation_n and_o origen_n in_o the_o 3d_o have_v surpass_v all_o the_o other_o in_o mis-application_n remote_a from_o the_o scope_n of_o the_o holy_a penman_n as_o may_v have_v be_v observe_v by_o what_o have_v be_v allege_v from_o they_o and_o several_a other_o concern_v spirit_n in_o the_o 15_o chapter_n their_o homily_n that_o be_v their_o sermon_n contain_v but_o few_o exposition_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n and_o still_o few_o translation_n it_o be_v true_a that_o origen_n and_o st._n jerom_n have_v take_v more_o pain_n than_o the_o other_o and_o be_v also_o more_o puzzle_v have_v translate_v the_o sacred_a write_n in_o those_o age_n in_o which_o the_o knowledge_n of_o tongue_n be_v not_o much_o look_v after_o nor_o improve_v in_o the_o mean_a while_n what_o those_o doctor_n hap_v propose_v upon_o many_o separate_a passage_n disperse_v through_o their_o write_n upon_o which_o instead_o of_o a_o serious_a examination_n they_o have_v put_v the_o sense_n that_o be_v most_o favourable_a to_o their_o private_a opinion_n have_v ever_o be_v receive_v and_o teach_v afterward_o thus_o it_o be_v happen_v long_o after_o the_o knowledge_n of_o tongue_n not_o be_v better_o improve_v that_o their_o interpretation_n have_v be_v admit_v without_o contradiction_n only_o upon_o their_o own_o credit_n and_o look_v upon_o with_o that_o veneration_n that_o be_v common_o pay_v to_o antiquity_n as_o though_o the_o world_n in_o process_n of_o time_n be_v grow_v young_a than_o before_o by_o these_o mean_v it_o be_v that_o their_o doctrine_n concern_v spirit_n and_o especial_o the_o bad_a have_v insensible_o be_v bequeath_v as_o a_o inheritance_n to_o posterity_n sect._n 12._o since_o therefore_o every_o one_o be_v so_o much_o take_v up_o with_o this_o sect_n and_o pay_v so_o great_a a_o deference_n to_o those_o that_o be_v call_v the_o eminent_a father_n it_o be_v no_o wonder_n that_o the_o papist_n who_o above_o all_o other_o put_v a_o high_a value_n upon_o they_o shall_v use_v their_o language_n and_o consecrate_v all_o their_o expression_n and_o it_o be_v long_a since_o the_o protestant_n have_v observe_v that_o these_o their_o adversary_n have_v found_v the_o prayer_n for_o the_o dead_a the_o worship_v of_o saint_n and_o the_o like_a doctrine_n upon_o some_o expression_n of_o the_o father_n that_o seem_v to_o favour_v they_o when_o afterward_o they_o be_v compel_v to_o give_v some_o proof_n out_o of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n they_o find_v the_o first_o together_o with_o purgatory_n in_o the_o one_a epistle_n of_o st._n paul_n to_o the_o corinthian_n chap._n 3.13_o that_o fire_n shall_v try_v every_o man_n work_n it_o be_v almost_o the_o same_o with_o those_o that_o be_v breed_v among_o the_o lutheran_n how_o great_a a_o philosopher_n and_o how_o learned_a soever_o any_o one_o may_v be_v he_o will_v find_v no_o reason_n and_o much_o less_o a_o necessity_n to_o believe_v that_o christ_n be_v local_o and_o visible_o ascend_v to_o heaven_n but_o it_o will_v appear_v to_o he_o a_o necessary_a proposition_n that_o our_o lord_n after_o his_o resurrection_n penetrate_v through_o door_n shut_v up_o and_o that_o his_o humanity_n be_v omnipotent_a how_o learn_v soever_o one_o may_v be_v in_o the_o tongue_n there_o be_v however_o frequent_a occasion_n in_o which_o it_o can_v neither_o be_v see_v or_o conjecture_v upon_o what_o ground_n the_o learned_a have_v give_v to_o some_o certain_a word_n a_o signification_n that_o favour_v the_o
judaisme_n or_o popery_n but_o they_o draw_v their_o original_a from_o paganism_n what_o reason_n than_o may_v a_o protestant_a have_v to_o reject_v the_o fable_n of_o the_o talmud_n and_o the_o story_n of_o the_o popish_a writing_n as_o soon_o as_o those_o fable_n and_o tale_n be_v naturalize_v by_o jew_n or_o papist_n and_o to_o hold_v they_o for_o truth_n or_o at_o least_o for_o probable_a thing_n as_o long_o as_o paganism_n cherish_v they_o in_o its_o bosom_n all_o must_v be_v reject_v together_o or_o the_o whole_a whatever_o it_o may_v be_v must_v be_v let_v alone_o why_o do_v we_o not_o free_v ourselves_o from_o all_o our_o prejudices_fw-la and_o associciate_v scripture_n to_o reason_n to_o ground_v our_o reason_n only_o upon_o they_o and_o to_o look_v upon_o they_o as_o the_o only_a pure_a spring_n what_o pain_n and_o trouble_n have_v not_o our_o credulity_n to_o those_o heathen_a tale_n cost_v we_o how_o many_o learned_a divine_n and_o philosopher_n have_v puzzle_v their_o brain_n to_o ascribe_v to_o the_o devil_n those_o oracle_n which_o they_o look_v not_o for_o the_o effect_n of_o human_a knowledge_n and_o withal_o such_o wonder_n as_o they_o can_v not_o believe_v to_o be_v perform_v by_o human_a power_n so_o when_o it_o seem_v that_o the_o answer_n that_o be_v give_v by_o the_o false_a god_n and_o the_o effect_n that_o be_v produce_v among_o the_o heathen_n be_v too_o extraordinary_a and_o above_o the_o force_n of_o nature_n it_o be_v think_v fit_a to_o cut_v the_o knot_n that_o can_v not_o be_v untie_v it_o be_v suppose_v that_o spirit_n only_o can_v be_v the_o author_n of_o all_o these_o thing_n a_o suitable_a power_n and_o knowledge_n be_v ascribe_v to_o they_o and_o at_o last_o the_o very_a manner_n of_o effect_v they_o be_v determine_v such_o be_v the_o original_a of_o that_o science_n fals●y_v so_o call_v the_o contradiction_n of_o which_o the_o apostle_n command_v a_o christian_n to_o avoid_v in_o his_o 1_o epist_n to_o timothy_n chap._n 6._o v._n 20._o sect._n 18._o the_o old_a woman_n tale_n as_o st._n paul_n call_v they_o in_o the_o same_o epistle_n chap._n 4._o v._n 7._o which_o the_o popish_a writer_n tell_v we_o and_o the_o fable_n they_o rehearse_v will_v supply_v we_o with_o abundant_a matter_n of_o meditation_n shall_v we_o as_o much_o credit_n they_o as_o we_o do_v the_o other_o for_o what_o must_v not_o be_v say_v if_o suppose_v that_o human_a deceit_n have_v no_o share_n in_o they_o we_o will_v examine_v how_o the_o devil_n can_v produce_v all_o the_o effect_n that_o be_v tell_v in_o those_o narration_n we_o believe_v it_o more_o convenient_a to_o spare_v ourselves_o that_o trouble_n by_o reject_v as_o mere_a lie_n the_o great_a part_n of_o what_o come_v from_o that_o side_n but_o what_o reason_n have_v we_o to_o deal_v otherwise_o with_o the_o papist_n than_o with_o the_o heathen_n it_o be_v because_o of_o the_o particular_a hatred_n we_o have_v for_o popery_n from_o which_o we_o have_v be_v separate_v not_o long_o since_o and_o with_o which_o we_o be_v in_o continual_a war_n beside_o the_o reformation_n of_o doctrine_n and_o worship_n that_o be_v make_v in_o the_o church_n at_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o last_o century_n extend_v not_o to_o those_o opinion_n which_o be_v scarce_o take_v notice_n of_o and_o which_o have_v take_v root_n even_o before_o the_o decay_n of_o the_o church_n be_v perceive_v so_o that_o it_o be_v only_o purify_v of_o such_o error_n the_o rejection_n of_o which_o be_v judge_v absolute_o necessary_a in_o conference_n betwixt_o luther_n and_o calvin_n not_o long_o after_o when_o the_o reformation_n be_v carry_v far_o such_o point_n only_o be_v handle_v as_o have_v some_o relation_n with_o the_o former_a it_o be_v proper_o for_o that_o reason_n that_o in_o those_o public_a writing_n that_o be_v call_v the_o liturgy_n of_o our_o church_n it_o be_v never_o mind_v to_o correct_v those_o expression_n that_o have_v be_v so_o long_o in_o use_n as_o to_o spirit_n and_o devil_n no_o controversy_n have_v ever_o be_v raise_v either_o among_o the_o christian_n in_o general_a or_o the_o papist_n in_o particular_a yet_o i_o doubt_v not_o but_o it_o have_v be_v do_v have_v this_o article_n be_v take_v so_o much_o notice_n of_o and_o examine_v with_o so_o much_o attention_n as_o the_o other_o be_v or_o have_v but_o one_o half_a of_o the_o difficulty_n that_o be_v now_o propose_v be_v allege_v at_o that_o time_n sect._n 19_o moreover_o among_o the_o quality_n that_o be_v ascribe_v to_o popery_n the_o picture_n of_o which_o i_o confess_v can_v scarce_o be_v more_o unshap_o than_o the_o original_a itself_o that_o of_o antichristianism_n be_v think_v very_o convenient_a as_o that_o of_o antichrist_n to_o fit_v the_o pope_n extraordinary_a well_o immediate_o the_o word_n of_o st._n paul_n in_o his_o 2_o epistle_n to_o the_o thessalonian_o chap._n 2._o v._n 3._o to_o the_o 9th_o be_v explain_v in_o that_o sense_n and_o it_o be_v think_v that_o the_o apostle_n have_v a_o eye_n to_o popery_n when_o he_o say_v that_o his_o come_n will_v be_v in_o the_o efficacy_n of_o satan_n with_o all_o power_n sign_n and_o lie_v wonder_n by_o the_o explication_n the_o protestant_n be_v dispose_v to_o join_v together_o satan_n and_o antichrist_n that_o be_v the_o devil_n and_o the_o pope_n as_o two_o brother_n and_o to_o draw_v that_o consequence_n that_o popery_n be_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o devil_n by_o which_o mean_v it_o be_v easy_a to_o insinuate_v that_o the_o devil_n intereste_n and_o have_v his_o vote_n in_o the_o tenet_n of_o the_o papist_n and_o that_o the_o see_v of_o rome_n be_v the_o seat_n of_o his_o empire_n sect._n 20._o thence_o proceed_v the_o stile_n that_o be_v ordinary_o use_v both_o in_o discourse_n and_o book_n even_o as_o to_o the_o small_a controversy_n that_o be_v raise_v about_o some_o point_n of_o doctrine_n or_o worship_n when_o any_o stick_v not_o to_o the_o vulgar_a opinion_n it_o be_v present_o cry_v up_o that_o the_o devil_n be_v let_v loose_a and_o use_v all_o his_o violence_n and_o crafty_a device_n to_o assault_v the_o church_n it_o be_v say_v he_o be_v always_o ready_a to_o oppose_v all_o our_o motion_n towards_o good_a and_o a_o thousand_o like_v people_z be_v please_v to_o hear_v the_o devil_n so_o set_v off_o they_o love_v the_o occasion_n of_o cast_v upon_o he_o all_o the_o fault_n they_o be_v guilty_a of_o and_o of_o applaud_v themselves_o for_o victory_n when_o they_o have_v overcome_v some_o temptation_n which_o they_o imagine_v to_o have_v be_v raise_v by_o the_o endeavour_n of_o that_o powerful_a enemy_n we_o look_v upon_o it_o as_o a_o piece_n of_o eloquence_n not_o only_o to_o take_v god_n name_n in_o vain_a but_o also_o incessant_o to_o join_v that_o of_o the_o devil_n with_o it_o in_o a_o word_n the_o almighty_a form_n almost_o no_o project_n but_o immediate_o the_o devil_n endeavour_v to_o destroy_v it_o and_o the_o most_o vicious_a man_n commit_v scarce_o any_o crime_n but_o they_o be_v drive_v to_o they_o by_o the_o devil_n sect._n 21._o with_o all_o those_o prejudices_fw-la we_o undertake_v the_o expound_v and_o translate_n of_o the_o holy_a writ_n for_o have_v never_o conceive_v the_o least_o doubt_n as_o to_o these_o thing_n we_o have_v never_o occasion_n to_o examine_v whether_o they_o be_v real_o true_a but_o why_o shall_v we_o take_v so_o much_o trouble_v be_v it_o not_o far_o more_o convenient_a to_o believe_v what_o be_v general_o believe_v and_o to_o speak_v as_o the_o other_o do_v the_o enquiry_n of_o truth_n be_v a_o undertake_n in_o which_o little_a assistance_n be_v to_o be_v hope_v and_o there_o be_v so_o many_o guard_n on_o all_o the_o way_n that_o lead_v to_o it_o that_o it_o will_v prove_v very_o hard_o to_o break_v through_o it_o be_v a_o ancient_a proverb_n that_o every_o one_o be_v not_o allow_v to_o go_v to_o corinth_n whoever_o intend_v to_o overcome_v so_o many_o difficulty_n can_v hope_v to_o succeed_v but_o by_o his_o diligence_n eagerness_n and_o earnestness_n to_o this_o end_n i_o know_v not_o a_o better_a mean_n than_o to_o proceed_v to_o the_o interpretation_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n as_o though_o it_o have_v never_o be_v interpret_v before_o to_o search_v into_o all_o thing_n careful_o to_o inquire_v after_o the_o connection_n of_o all_o the_o doctrine_n contain_v in_o it_o and_o to_o have_v recourse_n to_o interpreter_n only_o to_o borrow_v some_o light_n for_o dark_a place_n but_o not_o to_o follow_v they_o as_o true_a and_o infallible_a guide_n this_o i_o hope_v to_o put_v in_o practice_n in_o my_o second_o book_n if_o god_n give_v i_o life_n sect._n 22._o but_o doubtless_o this_o advice_n will_v prove_v serviceable_a only_o to_o myself_o and_o some_o few_o person_n who_o shall_v perceive_v its_o usefulness_n neither_o have_v i_o reason_n to_o hope_v that_o it_o shall_v ever_o be_v relish_v by_o the_o public_a popery_n be_v not_o so_o far_o eradicate_v out_o of_o the_o protestant_n heart_n but_o that_o it_o spring_v up_o again_o from_o time_n to_o time_n in_o some_o place_n there_o be_v a_o fault_n of_o which_o the_o visible_a church_n be_v never_o free_a that_o be_v the_o have_v too_o much_o deference_n for_o authority_n and_o tradition_n for_o though_o a_o great_a respect_n ought_v to_o be_v pay_v to_o those_o that_o be_v establish_v as_o god_n minister_n in_o the_o church_n and_o that_o several_a thing_n concern_v her_o external_a government_n aught_o to_o be_v rule_v by_o her_o director_n yet_o we_o must_v not_o give_v up_o ourselves_o whole_o to_o they_o there_o be_v a_o great_a regard_n to_o be_v have_v as_o to_o this_o point_n and_o a_o mean_a to_o be_v choose_v with_o much_o discretion_n lest_o to_o avoid_v the_o reproach_n of_o irreverence_n and_o irregularity_n we_o shall_v ascribe_v too_o much_o to_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n and_o the_o common_a opinion_n of_o her_o chief_a doctor_n in_o this_o sense_n it_o be_v that_o one_o of_o the_o most_o learned_a man_n of_o this_o age_n undertake_v to_o assert_v this_o thesis_n papatus_fw-la est_fw-la inseparabilis_fw-la ab_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la the_o popedom_n be_v inseparable_a from_o the_o church_n as_o for_o i_o who_o perhaps_o have_v more_o experience_n in_o this_o matter_n than_o any_o other_o person_n in_o these_o province_n i_o dare_v not_o hope_v this_o method_n shall_v change_v and_o even_o have_v no_o reason_n to_o believe_v it_o consider_v what_o pass_v whilst_o i_o be_o take_v up_o with_o this_o present_a work_n however_o i_o shall_v prosecute_v my_o design_n rely_v upon_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n be_v persuade_v that_o i_o write_v for_o maintain_v the_o truth_n and_o that_o i_o can_v forbear_v to_o do_v it_o since_o i_o be_o inform_v of_o it_o after_o all_o as_o i_o aim_v at_o nothing_o else_o but_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n and_o the_o defence_n of_o the_o true_a faith_n so_o i_o see_v that_o my_o labour_n have_v not_o be_v in_o vain_a but_o have_v already_o produce_v great_a fruit._n this_o bear_v up_o my_o courage_n and_o inspire_v i_o with_o great_a ardour_n to_o apply_v myself_o to_o the_o composition_n of_o the_o follow_a book_n the_o end_n of_o the_o first_o book_n